<SPAN name="startofbook"></SPAN>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_i" id="Page_i"></SPAN></span></p>
<div class='center'><h1> THE<br/><br/> FREEDMEN'S BOOK.</h1>
<h2>By L. MARIA CHILD.</h2></div>
<div class='centered-div'>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">O dark, sad millions,—patiently and dumb<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Waiting for God,—your hour, at last, has come,<br/></span>
<span class="i4">And Freedom's song<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Breaks the long silence of your night of wrong.<br/></span></div>
<p class="cit"><span class="smcap">John G. Whittier.</span></p>
</div>
</div>
<div class="figcenter"> <ANTIMG class="plain" src="images/logo_scaled.png" width-obs="182" height-obs="200" alt="Publisher's logo" title="" /></div>
<div class='center'>BOSTON:<br/>
TICKNOR AND FIELDS.<br/>
1865.</div>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_ii" id="Page_ii"></SPAN></span></p>
<div class='center'>
Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1865, by<br/>
L. MARIA CHILD,<br/>
in the Clerk's Office of the District Court of the District of Massachusetts.<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
<span class="smcap">University Press: Welch, Bigelow, & Co.,<br/>
Cambridge.</span><br/></div>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_iii" id="Page_iii"></SPAN></span></p>
<div class='center'>
<i>TO</i><br/>
<br/>
THE LOYAL AND BRAVE<br/>
<br/>
CAPTAIN ROBERT SMALL,<br/>
<br/>
<i>Hero of the Steamboat Planter</i>,<br/>
<br/>
THIS VOLUME IS RESPECTFULLY DEDICATED BY<br/>
<br/>
L. MARIA CHILD.<br/></div>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_iv" id="Page_iv"></SPAN></span></p>
<h2><SPAN name="TO_THE_FREEDMEN" id="TO_THE_FREEDMEN"></SPAN>TO THE FREEDMEN.</h2>
<p>I have prepared this book expressly for you, with
the hope that those of you who can read will read
it aloud to others, and that all of you will derive fresh
strength and courage from this true record of what colored
men have accomplished, under great disadvantages.</p>
<p>I have written all the biographies over again, in order
to give you as much information as possible in the fewest
words. I take nothing for my services; and the book is
sold to you at the cost of paper, printing, and binding.
Whatever money you pay for any of the volumes will be
immediately invested in other volumes to be sent to freedmen
in various parts of the country, on the same terms;
and whatever money remains in my hands, when the book
ceases to sell, will be given to the Freedmen's Aid Association,
to be expended in schools for you and your children.</p>
<p class="quotsig">
Your old friend,<br/>
L. MARIA CHILD.<br/></p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_v" id="Page_v"></SPAN></span></p>
<h2><SPAN name="CONTENTS" id="CONTENTS"></SPAN>CONTENTS.</h2>
<div class="center">
<table border="0" cellpadding="2" cellspacing="0" summary="">
<tr><td> </td><td><span class="smcap">Author.</span></td><td align="right"><span class="smcap">Page</span></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Ignatius Sancho</span></td><td><i>L. Maria Child</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_1">1</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Extract from the Tenth Psalm</span></td><td> </td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_12">12</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Prejudice Reproved</span></td><td><i>Lydia H. Sigourney</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_13">13</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Benjamin Banneker</span></td><td><i>L. Maria Child</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_14">14</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Ethiopia</span></td><td><i>Frances E. W. Harper</i>*</td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_24">24</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Hour of Freedom</span></td><td><i>William Lloyd Garrison</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_25">25</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">William Boen</span></td><td><i>L. Maria Child</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_26">26</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Anecdote of General Washington</span></td><td> </td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_31">31</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Prayer of the Slave</span></td><td><i>Bernard Barton</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_32">32</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Toussaint l'Ouverture</span></td><td><i>L. Maria Child</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_33">33</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Aspirations of Mingo</span></td><td><i>Mingo, a Slave</i>*</td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_84">84</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Bury Me in a Free Land</span></td><td><i>Frances E. W. Harper</i>*</td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_85">85</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Phillis Wheatley</span></td><td><i>L. Maria Child</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_86">86</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">A Pertinent Question</span></td><td><i>Frederick Douglass</i>*</td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_93">93</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Works of Providence</span></td><td><i>Phillis Wheatley</i>*</td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_94">94</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Dying Christian</span></td><td><i>Frances E. W. Harper</i>*</td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_96">96</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Kindness to Animals</span></td><td><i>L. Maria Child</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_97">97</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">James Forten</span></td><td><i>L. Maria Child</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_101">101</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Meeting in the Swamp</span></td><td><i>L. Maria Child</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_104">104</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">A Reasonable Request</span></td><td><i>Peter Williams</i>*</td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_110">110</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Slave Poet</span></td><td><i>George Horton, a Slave</i>*</td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_111">111</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Ratie</span></td><td><i>Mattie Griffith</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_114">114</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Kingdom of Christ</span></td><td><i>James Montgomery</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_123">123</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Progress of Emancipation in the British West Indies</span></td><td><i>L. Maria Child</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_124">124</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_vi" id="Page_vi"></SPAN></span></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Last Night of Slavery</span></td><td><i>James Montgomery</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_146">146</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Madison Washington</span></td><td><i>L. Maria Child</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_147">147</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Extract from the Virginia Bill of Rights</span></td><td> </td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_154">154</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Praise of Creation</span></td><td><i>George Horton</i>*</td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_155">155</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Frederick Douglass</span></td><td><i>L. Maria Child</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_156">156</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">How the Good Work goes on</span></td><td> </td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_176">176</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Dedication Hymn</span></td><td><i>J. M. Whitefield</i>*</td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_177">177</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">A Prayer</span></td><td><i>John G. Whittier</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_178">178</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">William and Ellen Crafts</span></td><td><i>L. Maria Child</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_179">179</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Spring</span></td><td><i>George Horton</i>*</td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_205">205</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Good Grandmother</span></td><td><i>Harriet Jacobs</i>*</td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_206">206</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Colored Mother's Prayer</span></td><td> </td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_219">219</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">William Costin</span></td><td> </td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_220">220</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Education of Children</span></td><td><i>L. Maria Child</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_221">221</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Thank God for Little Children</span></td><td><i>Frances E. W. Harper</i>*</td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_226">226</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Sam and Andy</span></td><td><i>Harriet Beecher Stowe</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_227">227</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">John Brown</span></td><td><i>L. Maria Child</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_241">241</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Air of Freedom</span></td><td><i>Frances E. W. Harper</i>*</td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_243">243</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Emancipation in the District of Columbia</span></td><td><i>James Madison Bell</i>*</td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_244">244</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">The Laws of Health</span></td><td><i>L. Maria Child</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_246">246</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">President Lincoln's Proclamation of Emancipation</span></td><td><i>Frances E. W. Harper</i>*</td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_250">250</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">New-Year's Day on the Islands of South Carolina</span></td><td><i>Charlotte L. Forten</i>*</td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_251">251</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Song of the Negro Boatmen at Port Royal, S. C.</span></td><td><i>John G. Whittier</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_257">257</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Extract from Speech to Colored People in Charleston</span></td><td><i>Hon. Henry Wilson</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_259">259</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Extract from Speech to Colored People in Charleston</span></td><td><i>Hon. Judge Kelly</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_261">261</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Black Tom</span></td><td><i>A Yankee Soldier</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_263">263</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Letter from a Freedman</span></td><td><i>Jourdon Anderson</i>*</td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_265">265</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Colonel Robert G. Shaw</span></td><td><i>Eliza B. Sedgwick</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_268">268</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Advice from an Old Friend</span></td><td><i>L. Maria Child</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_269">269</SPAN></td></tr>
<tr><td><span class="smcap">Day of Jubilee</span></td><td><i>A. G. Duncan</i></td><td align="right"><SPAN href="#Page_277">277</SPAN></td></tr>
</table></div>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_1" id="Page_1"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>* The names of the colored authors are marked with an asterisk.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="THE_FREEDMENS_BOOK" id="THE_FREEDMENS_BOOK"></SPAN>THE FREEDMEN'S BOOK.</h2>
<h2><SPAN name="IGNATIUS_SANCHO" id="IGNATIUS_SANCHO"></SPAN>IGNATIUS SANCHO.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY L. MARIA CHILD.</p>
<p>This was the name of a remarkable African, who
excited a good deal of interest in his day. His
father and mother were stolen from Africa and put on
board a slave-ship in 1729, which was one hundred and
thirty-six years ago. He was born during the passage,
and when the vessel arrived at Carthagena, in South
America, he was baptized by the name of Ignatius. His
mother died soon after, and his father, seeing no means
of escape from slavery, killed himself in a fit of despair.
The man who took possession of the little orphan, and
claimed to be his master, carried him to England, and
gave him to three unmarried sisters who lived at Greenwich.
He was then about two years old, a bright, lively,
funny little creature. As he grew older, he showed such
an inquisitive mind, said so many droll things, and was
so full of mischief, that the ladies named him Sancho,
after a very comical character in a famous old Spanish
novel. He was very eager in the pursuit of knowledge;
but this commendable disposition was not approved by
the ladies. They thought that all a black servant had
occasion to know was how to obey orders, and that it
was not necessary or proper for him to learn to read
and write. But nature had given Ignatius a very lively<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_2" id="Page_2"></SPAN></span>
mind, and a very susceptible heart, and neither of them
could be kept quiet. He early plunged into love affairs,
and was always overrunning with fun and frolic. Doubtless
he was a great trial to the respectable maiden ladies,
who were training him for a servant; and he, on his part,
thought them very sour, severe, and disagreeable. Sometimes,
when they were angry with him, they reminded
him that he had been a slave, and threatened to send
him into slavery again. This excited uneasiness in his
mind, and kindled resentment.</p>
<p>The Duke of Montagu lived in the neighborhood, and
his attention was attracted by the bright, frank countenance
of the black boy. He entered into conversation
with him occasionally, and was so much struck by his
intelligence and wit, that he told the ladies their servant
was a remarkable lad, and that his earnest desire to improve
his mind ought to be gratified. They persisted in
their opinion that knowledge was a very improper and
dangerous thing for a black servant. But the Duke introduced
him to the Duchess, and they both encouraged
him to learn to read and write. They lent him books,
and were greatly entertained by his bright remarks concerning
what he read.</p>
<p>It was a great grief to Ignatius when the friendly Duke
died. He besought the Duchess to receive him into her
service, and she consented. He remained in her household
as long as she lived. At her death, she left him an
annuity of about one hundred and fifty dollars a year;
and he had three hundred and fifty dollars, which he had
laid up from his wages. He might have made this sum
the foundation of a comfortable little property. But nature
had made him very full of fun and frolic. He had
such lively manners, and uttered so many pleasant jokes,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_3" id="Page_3"></SPAN></span>
that his company was much sought for. This proved a
temptation too strong for him. He accepted invitations
to go to taverns, where he gambled away his earnings.
He had a great passion for going to the theatre; and
his conduct with regard to women was far from being
correct.</p>
<p>But he soon saw the error of his ways, and resolved
to reform. He went to the Chaplain of Montagu House,
and begged to be taken into his service, where he remained
several months. The descendants of his old
friend, the Duke, encouraged him to persevere in his
good resolutions; and when the young Duke saw that
he continued sober and industrious, he took him into his
employ. By the blessing of the Heavenly Father, another
saving influence came to help him into the paths
of virtue. He formed a serious attachment for a very
worthy young woman from the West Indies, to whom he
was soon after married. He remained in the employ of
the Duke of Montagu until he was about forty-four years
old. Frequent attacks of the gout, and clumsiness resulting
from an hereditary tendency to corpulence, rendered
him unfit to continue in the service to which he
had so long been accustomed. His good friend and
patron the Duke assisted him to establish a small shop
for groceries. By economy and industry, he and his
good wife managed to rear and educate well a numerous
family of children.</p>
<p>He always retained his love of learning, and was such
a diligent reader, that he was well acquainted with the
current literature of that time. He was treated with
respect and attention by many intelligent and educated
people. Though not so full of fun as he was in his
younger days, his conversation was entertaining. The<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_4" id="Page_4"></SPAN></span>
letters he wrote to various persons abound with good
sense, and show that he was very affectionate and devoted
as a husband and father. He evidently regarded
his wife as the best blessing of his life. In one of his
letters to a friend he says: "The hot weather does not
befriend Mrs. Sancho, but time will, I hope. If true
worth could plead exemption from pain and sickness, she
would, by right divine, enjoy the best of health." On
another occasion he writes: "I can compare her to nothing
so properly as a diamond in the dirt. But, my
friend, that is Fortune's fault, not mine; for had I the
power, I would case her in gold." Years later, he
writes: "Dame Sancho would be better in health, if she
cared less. I am her barometer. If a sigh escapes me,
it is answered by a tear in her eye. I often assume
gayety to illume her dear sensibility with a smile, which
twenty years ago almost bewitched me, and which still
constitutes my highest pleasure. May such be your lot,
my friend. What more can friendship wish you than
to glide down the stream of time with a partner of congenial
principles and fine feelings, whose very looks speak
tenderness and sentiment."</p>
<p>After a severe illness he wrote to a friend: "I had excruciating
pains and great lack of patience. Mrs. Sancho
had a week of it. Gout did not sweeten my temper. It
was washing week, and she had to attend the shop. God
bless her, and reward her. She is good; good in heart,
good in principle, good by habit."</p>
<p>The children appear to have been the delight of his
heart. He called them "Sanchonettas," which would
be the Italian way of saying Little Sanchos. He was
never tired of describing their little winning ways. At
the end of a letter to one of his friends he wrote: "Lydia<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_5" id="Page_5"></SPAN></span>
trots about amazingly; and Kitty imitates her, with this
addition, that she is as mischievous as a monkey." But
little William, his youngest, was evidently his pet. To
another of his friends he wrote: "You cannot imagine
what hold little Billy gets of me. He grows, he prattles,
every day he learns something new. The rogue is fond
of me to excess. By his good-will he would be always
in the shop with me. The little monkey! He clings
round my legs; and if I chide him, or look sour, he holds
up his little mouth to kiss me."</p>
<p>Ignatius Sancho had a very kind heart. It hurt his
feelings very much to see any animal tormented. He
tried to get some laws passed to prevent cruel market-men
from abusing their donkeys; and he always tried to
be a friend to everybody that was in distress. In one
of his letters he says: "The joy of giving and of making
happy is almost the attribute of a god. There is as much
sweetness conveyed to the senses by doing a right good-natured
deed as our frame can consistently bear."</p>
<p>Such a disposition is better than a remarkable intellect.
But he had a quick intellect also, and generally took
sensible views of things. Writing to a young colored
friend, who had been somewhat wild, he says:—</p>
<p>"Look round upon the miserable fate of almost all of
our unfortunate color. See slavery added to ignorance.
See the contempt of the very wretches who roll in affluence
from our labors. Hear the ill-bred, heart-racking
abuse of the ignorant vulgar. If you tread as cautiously
as the strictest rectitude can guide you, you must suffer
from this. But if you are armed with truth and conscious
integrity, you will be sure of the plaudits and
countenance of the good.</p>
<p>"You are a happy lad. You have kind benefactors,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_6" id="Page_6"></SPAN></span>
to whom you ought to look up with reverence, and humbly
beg the Almighty to give you strength to imitate
them in doing good. Your parts are as quick as most
men's. If you urge your speed in the race of virtue
with the same zeal you have exhibited in error, you will
recover, to the satisfaction of your noble patrons, and to
the glory of yourself.</p>
<p>"Some philosopher, whose name I forget, wished for a
window in his breast, that the world might see his heart.
I recommend him to your imitation. Vice is a coward.
To be truly brave, a man must be truly good. You hate
the name of cowardice; then detest a lie and shun liars.
Be above revenge. If others have taken advantage
either of your guilt or your distress, punish them only
with forgiveness; and if you can serve them at any
future time, do it.</p>
<p>"I sincerely congratulate thee upon thy repentance.
It is thy birthday to real happiness."</p>
<p>To one of the white gentlemen who liked to correspond
with him, he wrote:—</p>
<p>"There is something so amazingly grand and affecting
in contemplating the works of the Divine Architect,
either in the moral or the intellectual world, that I think
one may rightly call it the cordial of the soul, the best
antidote against pride and discontent. The friendly
warmth of that glorious planet the sun, the leniency
of the air, the cheerful glow of the atmosphere, make
me involuntarily cry, 'Lord, what is man, that thou, in
thy mercy, art so mindful of him? or what is the son of
man, that thou so parentally carest for him?'</p>
<p>"Sometimes, when I endeavor to turn my thoughts
inward, to review the powers or properties the indulgent
all-wise Father has endowed me with, I am struck with<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_7" id="Page_7"></SPAN></span>
wonder and with awe; poor, insignificant worm as I am,
in comparison with superior beings, mortal like myself.
At the head of our riches I reckon the power of reflection.
Where doth it lie? Search every member, from
the toe to the nose,—they are all ready for action, but
they are all dead to thought. It is that breath of life
which the Sacred Architect breathed into the nostrils
of the first man. We feel and acknowledge it, but it is
quite past the power of definition. Then to think of the
promise of never-ending existence! To rise, perhaps, by
regular progression from planet to planet, to behold the
wonders of immensity, to pass from good to better, increasing
in goodness, in knowledge, in love. To glory
in our Redeemer, to joy in ourselves, to be acquainted
with prophets, sages, heroes, and poets of old times, and
to join in the symphony with angels."</p>
<p>To a white young friend, who had obtained a situation
in India, he wrote:—</p>
<p>"It is with sincere pleasure I hear you have a lucrative
establishment. Your good sense will naturally lead you
to a proper economy, as distant from frigid parsimony
as from heedless extravagance. As you may have some
time for recreation, give me leave to obtrude my poor
advice. I have heard it more than once observed of
fortunate adventurers, that they come home rich in
purse, but wretchedly barren in intellect. My dear
Jack, the mind wants food as well as the stomach.
Why, then, should not one wish to increase in knowledge
as well as in money? The poet Young says,—</p>
<blockquote><p>'Books are fair Virtue's advocates and friends.'</p>
</blockquote>
<p>My advice to you is, to lay by something every year to
buy a little library. You have to thank God for strong
natural parts; you have a feeling, humane heart; you<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_8" id="Page_8"></SPAN></span>
write with sense and discernment. Improve yourself, my
dear Jack. Then if it should please God to return you
to your friends with a fortune, the embellishments of
your mind may be ever considered as greatly superior to
your riches, and only inferior to the goodness of your
heart. This is a good old adage: 'A few books and a
few friends, and those well chosen.'"</p>
<p>The same young friend wrote a letter to his father,
from Bombay, in India, in which he wrote: "The inhabitants
here, who are chiefly blacks, are a set of canting,
deceitful people, of whom one must have great caution."</p>
<p>Ignatius Sancho was always ready to defend the despised
and the oppressed, and his sympathy was all the
more lively if they were of his own color. He at once
wrote to his young friend:—</p>
<p>"In one of your letters to your father, you speak with
honest indignation of the treachery and chicanery of the
natives of India. My good friend, you should remember
from whom they learned those vices. The first visitors
from Christian countries found them a simple, harmless
people. But the cursed avidity for wealth urged those
first visitors, and all the succeeding ones, to such acts of
deception and wanton cruelty, that the poor, ignorant
natives soon learned their knavish arts, and turned them
upon their teachers. As a resident of your country, Old
England, I love it. I love it for its freedom. For the
many blessings I enjoy in it England shall ever have
my warmest wishes, prayers, and blessings. But I must
observe, and I say it with reluctance, that the conduct of
your country has been uniformly wicked in the East Indies,
in the West Indies, and on the coast of Guinea. The
grand object of English navigators, and indeed of all the
navigators of Christian nations, has been money, money,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_9" id="Page_9"></SPAN></span>
money. Commerce was meant by the goodness of Deity
to diffuse the various goods of the earth into every part;
to unite mankind with the blessed bonds of brotherly love
and mutual dependence. Enlightened Christians should
diffuse the riches of the Gospel of Peace together with
the commodities of their respective lands. If commerce
were attended with strict honesty and religion for companions,
it would be a blessing to every shore it touched at.</p>
<p>"The poor wretched Africans are blessed with a most
fertile and luxuriant soil; but they are rendered miserable
by what Providence meant for a blessing. The
abominable traffic in slaves, and the horrid cruelty and
treachery of the petty kings, is encouraged by their Christian
customers. They carry them strong liquors, powder,
and bad fire-arms to inflame them to madness, and to furnish
them with the hellish means of killing and kidnapping.
It is a subject that sours my blood. I mention
these things to guard my friend from being too hasty in
condemning a people who have been made much worse
by their Christian visitors.</p>
<p>"Wherever thou residest, make human nature thy
study. Whatever may be the religion or the complexion
of men, study their hearts. Let simplicity, kindness,
and charity be thy guides; and with these, even savages
will respect you, while God will bless you."</p>
<p>The writings of the Rev. Laurence Sterne, who was
living in England at that time, were well calculated to
inspire humanity toward animals and kindly feelings
toward the poor. These writings were very popular,
and two of the characters conspicuous in them, called
Uncle Toby and Corporal Trim, were great favorites
with the public. Ignatius Sancho especially delighted in
the writings of Sterne; and in 1776, when he was about<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_10" id="Page_10"></SPAN></span>
forty-seven years old, he addressed a letter to him as
follows:—</p>
<blockquote><p>"<span class="smcap">Reverend Sir</span>,—It would perhaps look like an insult
upon your humanity to apologize for the liberty I
am taking. I am one of those people whom the vulgar
and illiberal call 'Negurs.' The first part of my life was
rather unlucky, as I was placed in a family who judged
ignorance to be the best and only security for obedience.
By unwearied application I got a little reading and writing.
Through God's blessing, the latter part of my life
has been truly fortunate, for I have spent it in the service
of one of the best families in the kingdom. My chief
pleasure has been books. How very much, good sir, am
I, among millions, indebted to you for the character of
your amiable Uncle Toby! I declare I would walk ten
miles, in dog-days, to shake hands with the honest Corporal.
Your sermons have touched me to the heart, and I
hope have amended it. In your tenth discourse I find
this very affecting passage: 'Consider how great a part
of our species, in all ages, down to this, have been trodden
under the feet of cruel and capricious tyrants, who
would neither hear their cries nor pity their distresses.
Consider Slavery, what a bitter draught it is, and how
many millions are made to drink of it.'</p>
<p>"I am sure you will forgive me if I beseech you to
give some attention to Slavery, as it is practised at this
day in the West Indies. That subject, handled in your
striking manner, would perhaps ease the yoke of many;
but if only of one, what a feast for a benevolent heart!
and sure I am, you are an Epicurean<SPAN name="FNanchor_1_1" id="FNanchor_1_1"></SPAN><SPAN href="#Footnote_1_1" class="fnanchor">[1]</SPAN> in acts of charity.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_11" id="Page_11"></SPAN></span>
You, who are universally read and as universally admired,
could not fail. Dear sir, think that in me you
behold the uplifted hands of thousands of my brother
Moors. You pathetically observe that grief is eloquent.
Figure to yourself their attitudes, hear their supplications,
and you cannot refuse."</p>
</blockquote>
<p>Mr. Sterne wrote the following reply:—</p>
<blockquote><p class="quotdate">
"July 27th, 1766.</p>
<p>"There is a strange coincidence, Sancho, in the little
events of this world, as well as the great ones. I had
been writing a tender tale of the sorrows of a poor,
friendless negro girl, and my eyes had scarce done smarting
with it, when your letter, in behalf of so many of
her brethren and sisters, came to me. But why <i>her</i>
brethren or <i>your</i> brethren, Sancho, any more than <i>mine</i>?
It is by the finest tints, and the most insensible gradations,
that nature descends from the fairest face to the
sootiest complexion. At which of these tints are the ties
of blood to cease? and how many shades lower in the
scale must we descend, ere mercy is to vanish with them?</p>
<p>"It is no uncommon thing, my good Sancho, for one
half of the world to <i>use</i> the other half like brutes, and
then endeavor to <i>make</i> them so. For my part, I never
look Westward, when I am in a pensive mood, without
thinking of the burdens our brothers and sisters are there
carrying. If I could ease their shoulders from one ounce
of them, I declare I would this hour set out upon a pilgrimage
to Mecca for their sakes. It casts a sad shade
upon the world, that so great a part of it are, and have
so long been, bound in chains of darkness and chains of
misery. I cannot but respect you and felicitate you,
that by so much laudable diligence you have broken the<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_12" id="Page_12"></SPAN></span>
chains of darkness, and that by falling into the hands of
so good and merciful a family, you have been rescued by
Providence from the chains of misery.</p>
<p>"And so, good-hearted Sancho, adieu. Believe me, I
will not forget your letter.</p>
<p class="quotsig">
"Yours,<br/>
"<span class="smcap">Laurence Sterne</span>."<br/></p>
</blockquote>
<p>The last sickness of Ignatius Sancho was very painful,
but he was tenderly cared for by his good wife. He
was fifty-two years old when he died. After his death,
a small volume was published, containing a number of his
letters, some articles he had written for newspapers, and
an engraved likeness of him, which looks very bright and
good-natured. The book was published by subscription,
in which a large number of the English nobility and
some distinguished literary men joined.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="EXTRACT_FROM_THE_TENTH_PSALM" id="EXTRACT_FROM_THE_TENTH_PSALM"></SPAN>EXTRACT FROM THE TENTH PSALM.</h2>
<p>"The wicked in his pride doth persecute the poor. He
hath said in his heart, God hath forgotten; He hideth his
face; He will never see it. Thou <i>hast</i> seen it; for thou
beholdest mischief and spite, to requite it with thy hand.
The poor committeth himself unto thee; thou art the
helper of the fatherless. Lord, thou hast heard the desire
of the humble. Thou wilt cause thine ear to hear; thou
wilt prepare their heart to judge the fatherless and the
oppressed, that the man of the earth may no more oppress."</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_13" id="Page_13"></SPAN></span></p>
<h2><SPAN name="PREJUDICE_REPROVED" id="PREJUDICE_REPROVED"></SPAN>PREJUDICE REPROVED.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY LYDIA H. SIGOURNEY.</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">God gave to Afric's sons<br/></span>
<span class="i2">A brow of sable dye;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And spread the country of their birth<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Beneath a burning sky.<br/></span></div>
<br/><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">With a cheek of olive He made<br/></span>
<span class="i2">The little Hindoo child;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And darkly stained the forest tribes,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">That roam our Western wild.<br/></span></div>
<br/><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">To me He gave a form<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Of fairer, whiter clay;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">But am I, therefore, in his sight,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Respected more than they?<br/></span></div>
<br/><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">No;—'tis the hue of <i>deeds</i> and <i>thoughts</i><br/></span>
<span class="i2">He traces in his book;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">'Tis the complexion of the <i>heart</i><br/></span>
<span class="i2">On which He deigns to look.<br/></span></div>
<br/><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Not by the tinted cheek,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">That fades away so fast,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">But by the color of the <i>soul</i>,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">We shall be judged at last.<br/></span></div>
</div>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_14" id="Page_14"></SPAN></span></p>
<h2><SPAN name="BENJAMIN_BANNEKER" id="BENJAMIN_BANNEKER"></SPAN>BENJAMIN BANNEKER.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY L. MARIA CHILD.</p>
<p>This remarkable man was born near the village of
Ellicott's Mills, Baltimore County, Maryland, in
1732. That was one hundred and thirty-three years ago,
when there were very few schools and very few books in
this country, and when it was not as easy as it now is for
even white people to obtain a tolerably good education.
His parents were both black, and though they were free,
they were too poor to do much for their bright boy.
They sent him to a school in the neighborhood, where
he learned reading and writing and a little of arithmetic.</p>
<p>His father was a slave at the time of his marriage, but
his wife was a free woman; and she was so energetic and
industrious, that she soon earned money enough to buy
his freedom. Then they worked together, and earned
enough to buy a few acres of land, and build a small
cabin.</p>
<p>Benjamin was obliged to labor diligently when he was
at home from school, but every spare moment he could
catch he was ciphering, and planning how to make
things. As his parents grew old, he had to work early
and late, to support himself and help them. His mother
always continued active enough to do the in-door work.
When she was seventy years old, if she wanted to catch
a chicken she would run it down without appearing to be
tired. The place was thinly peopled, and the few neighbors
they had took no particular notice of Benjamin,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_15" id="Page_15"></SPAN></span>
though he had the name of being a bright, industrious
lad. His hands worked hard, but his brain was always
busy. He was particularly fond of arithmetic, and was
always working out sums in his head. He took notice
of everything around him, observed how everything was
made, and never forgot one word of what he had learned
at school. In this way, he came to have more knowledge
than most of his white neighbors; and they began to say
to one another, "That black Ben is a smart fellow. He
can make anything he sets out to; and how much he
knows! I wonder where he picked it all up."</p>
<p>At thirty years old, he made a clock, which proved an
excellent timepiece. He had never seen a clock, for
nobody in that region had such an article; but he had
seen a watch, and it occupied his thoughts very much.
It seemed to him such a curious little machine, that he
was very desirous to make something like it. The watch
was made of gold and silver and steel; but Benjamin
Banneker had only wood for material, and the rudest
kind of tools to work with. It was a long while before
he could make the hand that marked the hours, and the
hand that marked the minutes, and the hand that marked
the seconds, correspond exactly in their motions; but by
perseverance he succeeded at last. He was then about
thirty years old. This was the first clock ever made in
this country. It kept time exactly, and people began to
talk about it as a wonderful thing for a man to do without
instruction. After a while, the Ellicott family, who
owned the Mills, heard of it, and went to see it. Mr.
Elias Ellicott, a merchant in Baltimore, became very
much interested in the self-taught machinist. He lent
him a number of books, among which were some on
astronomy,—a science which treats of the sun, moon, and<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_16" id="Page_16"></SPAN></span>
stars. Banneker was so interested in this new knowledge
that he could think of nothing else. He sat up
all night to watch the planets, and to make calculations
about their motions. Mr. Ellicott went to see him to
explain to him how to use some of the tables for calculations
contained in the books he had lent him; but he
found, to his great surprise, that the earnest student had
studied them all out himself, and had no need of help.
It was not long before he could calculate when the sun
or the moon would be eclipsed, and at what time every
star would rise and set. He was never known to make
a mistake in any of his astronomical calculations; and
he became so exact, that he pointed out two mistakes
made by celebrated astronomers in Europe.</p>
<p>In order to pursue his favorite studies without interruption,
he sold the land which his parents had left him,
and bought an annuity with the money, on which he lived
in the little cabin where he was born. He was so temperate
and frugal, that he needed very little to support
him; and when it was necessary to have more than his
annuity, he could always earn something by going out to
work. But, as he was no longer seen in the fields late
and early, his ignorant white neighbors began to talk
against him. They peeped into his cabin and saw him
asleep in the daytime. They did not know that he had
been awake all night watching the stars, and ciphering
out his calculations. In fact, they did not know that the
planets moved at all; and if he had told them that he could
calculate their movements exactly, they would only have
laughed at him. I suppose they felt some ill-will toward
him because he was black, and yet knew so much more
than they did; and perhaps it excited their envy that the
Ellicott family and other educated gentlemen liked to<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_17" id="Page_17"></SPAN></span>
go to his cabin and talk with him about his studies and
observations.</p>
<p>But Banneker was wise enough not to enter into any
quarrels because they called him a lazy, good-for-nothing
fellow. He endeavored to live in such a way that they
could not help respecting him. He was always kind and
generous, ready to oblige everybody, and not at all inclined
to boast of his superiority.</p>
<p>When he was fifty-nine years old, he made an Almanac.
It is a very difficult job to calculate all about the
changes of the moon, and the rising and ebbing of the
tides, and at what time the sun will rise and set every
day, all the year round; and it was a much more difficult
task then than it is now; because now there is a
great improvement in astronomical books and instruments.
But notwithstanding Banneker's limited means
and scanty education, he made an excellent Almanac.
It was published by Goddard and Angell of Baltimore.
In a Preface, they say: "We feel gratified to have an
opportunity of presenting to the public, through our
press, what must be considered an extraordinary effort
of genius,—a complete and accurate Ephemeris<SPAN name="FNanchor_2_2" id="FNanchor_2_2"></SPAN><SPAN href="#Footnote_2_2" class="fnanchor">[2]</SPAN> for the
year 1792, calculated by a sable son of Africa. It has
met the approbation of several of the most distinguished
astronomers of America; and we hope a philanthropic
public will give their support to the work, not only on
account of its intrinsic merit, but from a desire to controvert
the long-established illiberal prejudice against the
blacks."</p>
<p>This was the first Almanac ever made in this country.
It contained much useful information of a general nature,
and interesting selections in prose and verse. Before it
<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_18" id="Page_18"></SPAN></span>was printed, Banneker sent a manuscript copy, in his
own handwriting, to Thomas Jefferson, then Secretary
of State, and afterward President of the United States.
After apologizing for the liberty he took in addressing a
person whose station was so far above his own, he says:—</p>
<blockquote><p>"Those of my complexion have long been considered
rather brutish than human,—scarcely capable of mental
endowments. But, in consequence of the reports that
have reached me, I hope I may safely admit that you
are measurably friendly and well-disposed toward us.
I trust that you agree with me in thinking that one
Universal Father hath given being to us all; that He
has not only made us all of one flesh, but has also, without
partiality, afforded us all the same sensations, and
endowed us all with the same faculties; and that, however
various we may be in society or religion, however
diversified in situation or color, we are all of the same
family, and all stand in the same relation to Him. Now,
sir, if this is founded in truth, I apprehend you will
readily embrace every opportunity to eradicate the absurd
and false ideas and opinions which so generally
prevail with respect to us.</p>
<p>"Suffer me, sir, to recall to your mind, that when the
tyranny of the British crown was exerted to reduce you
to servitude, your abhorrence thereof was so excited, that
you publicly held forth this true and invaluable doctrine,
worthy to be recorded and remembered in all succeeding
ages: 'We hold these truths to be self-evident, that all
men are created equal, and that they are endowed by
their Creator with certain inalienable rights; that among
these are life, liberty, and the pursuit of happiness.'</p>
<p>"Your tender feelings for yourselves engaged you thus
to declare. You were then impressed with proper ideas<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_19" id="Page_19"></SPAN></span>
of the great value of Liberty, and the free possession of
those blessings to which you were entitled by nature.
But, sir, how pitiable it is to reflect that, although you
were so fully convinced of the benevolence of the Father
of mankind, and of his equal and impartial distribution
of those rights and privileges which He had conferred
upon them, that you should at the same time counteract
his mercies in detaining, by fraud and violence, so numerous
a part of my brethren under groaning captivity and
cruel oppression; that you should at the same time be
found guilty of that most criminal act which you detested
in others with respect to yourselves.</p>
<p>"Sir, I freely and most cheerfully acknowledge that I
am of the African race; and in that color which is natural
to them I am of the deepest dye. But, with a sense
of most profound gratitude to the Supreme Ruler of the
universe, I confess that I am not under that state of
tyrannical thraldom and inhuman captivity to which so
many of my brethren are doomed. I have abundantly
tasted of those blessings which proceed from that free
and unequalled liberty with which you are favored.</p>
<p>"Sir, I suppose your knowledge of the situation of my
brethren is too extensive for it to need a recital here.
Neither shall I presume to prescribe methods by which
they may be relieved, otherwise than by recommending
to you and others to wean yourselves from those narrow
prejudices you have imbibed with respect to them, and
to do as Job proposed to his friends,—'Put <i>your</i> souls
in <i>their</i> souls' stead.' Thus shall your hearts be enlarged
with kindness and benevolence toward them, and you
will need neither the direction of myself nor others in
what manner to proceed.</p>
<p>"I took up my pen to direct to you, as a present, a
<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_20" id="Page_20"></SPAN></span>copy of an Almanac I have calculated for the succeeding
year. I ardently hope that your candor and generosity
will plead with you in my behalf. Sympathy and affection
for my brethren has caused my enlargement thus far;
it was not originally my design.</p>
<p>"The Almanac is the production of my arduous study.
I have long had unbounded desires to become acquainted
with the secrets of Nature, and I have had to gratify my
curiosity herein through my own assiduous application to
astronomical study; in which I need not recount to you
the many difficulties and disadvantages I have had to encounter.
I conclude by subscribing myself, with the most
profound respect, your most humble servant,</p>
<p class="quotsig">
<span class="smcap">"B. Banneker</span>."<br/></p>
</blockquote>
<p>To this letter Jefferson made the following reply:—</p>
<blockquote><p>"<span class="smcap">Sir</span>,—I thank you sincerely for your letter, and for
the Almanac it contained. Nobody wishes more than I
do to see such proofs as you exhibit that Nature has given
to our black brethren talents equal to those of the other
colors of men, and that the appearance of a want of them
is owing only to the degraded condition of their existence,
both in Africa and America. I can add, with truth, that
no one wishes more ardently to see a good system commenced
for raising the condition, both of their body and
mind, to what it ought to be, as fast as the imbecility of
their present existence, and other circumstances which
cannot be neglected, will admit. I have taken the liberty
of sending your Almanac to Monsieur Condorcet, Secretary
of the Academy of Sciences at Paris, and to members
of the Philanthropic Society, because I considered
it a document to which your whole color had a right, for
their justification against the doubts which have been
<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_21" id="Page_21"></SPAN></span>entertained of them. I am, with great esteem, sir, your
most obedient servant,</p>
<p class="quotsig">
"<span class="smcap">Thomas Jefferson</span>."<br/></p>
</blockquote>
<p>In 1803, Mr. Jefferson invited the astronomer to visit
him at Monticello, but the increasing infirmities of age
made it imprudent to undertake the journey. His Almanacs
sold well for ten years, and the income, added to
his annuity, gave him a very comfortable support; and
what was a still greater satisfaction to him was the consciousness
of doing something to help the cause of his
oppressed people, by proving to the world that Nature
had endowed them with good capacities.</p>
<p>After 1802 he found himself too old to calculate any
more Almanacs, but as long as he lived he continued to
be deeply interested in his various studies.</p>
<p>He was well informed on many other subjects besides
arithmetic and astronomy. He was a great reader of
history; and he kept a Journal, which shows that he was
a close observer of the vegetable world, of the habits of
insects, and of the operations of Nature in general. That
his busy mind drew inferences from what he observed is
evident from the following entry in his Journal:—</p>
<p>"Standing at my door to-day, I heard the discharge of
a gun, and in four or five seconds of time the small shots
came rattling about me, which plainly demonstrates that
the velocity of sound is greater than that of a common
bullet."</p>
<p>After the Constitution of the United States was
adopted, in 1789, commissioners were appointed to determine
the boundaries of the District of Columbia.
They invited Banneker to be present and assist them
in running the lines; and he was treated by them with<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_22" id="Page_22"></SPAN></span>
as much respect as if he had been of their own color. His
Almanacs were much praised by scientific men, and they
often visited him in his humble little cabin. But these
attentions never made him pert and vain. He rejoiced
in his abilities and acquisitions, because he thought they
might help to raise the condition of his oppressed brethren;
but he always remained modest and unobtrusive in
his manners.</p>
<p>He died in 1804, in the seventy-second year of his
age. His friend, Mr. Benjamin H. Ellicott, collected
various facts concerning him, which have been published.
In a letter on this subject, Mr. Ellicott says: "During
the whole of his long life he lived respectably, and was
much esteemed by all who became acquainted with him;
more especially by those who could fully appreciate his
genius and the extent of his acquirements. His mode
of life was extremely regular and retired. Having never
married, he lived alone, cooking his own victuals and
washing his own clothes. He was scarcely ever absent
from home, yet there was nothing misanthropic in his
character. A gentleman who knew him speaks of him
thus: 'I recollect him well. He was a brave-looking,
pleasant man, with something very noble in his appearance.
His mind was evidently much engrossed in his
calculations, but he was glad to receive the visits we
often paid him.' Another writes: 'When I was a boy,
I became very much interested in him. His manners
were those of a perfect gentleman. He was kind, generous,
hospitable, humane, dignified, and pleasing. He
abounded in information on all the various subjects and
incidents of the day, was very modest and unassuming,
and delighted in society at his own house. Go there
when you would, by day or night, there was constantly<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_23" id="Page_23"></SPAN></span>
in the middle of the floor a large table covered with
books and papers. As he was an eminent mathematician,
he was constantly in correspondence with other
mathematicians in this country, with whom there was an
interchange of questions of difficult solution. His head
was covered with thick white hair, which gave him a
venerable appearance. His dress was uniformly of superfine
drab broadcloth, made in the old style of a plain
coat with strait collar, a long waistcoat, and a broad-brimmed
hat. His color was not jet black, but decidedly
negro. In size and personal appearance he bore a strong
resemblance to the statue of Benjamin Franklin, at the
Library in Philadelphia.'"</p>
<p>The good which Banneker did to the cause of his
colored brethren did not cease with his life. When the
Abbe Gregoire pleaded for emancipation in France, and
when Wilberforce afterward labored for the same cause
in England, the abilities and character of the black astronomer
were brought forward as an argument against
the enslavement of his race; and, from that day to this,
the friends of freedom have quoted him everywhere as a
proof of the mental capacity of Africans.</p>
<hr class="tb" />
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">"They <i>found</i> them slaves! but who that title <i>gave</i>?<br/></span>
<span class="i0">The God of Nature never formed a slave!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Though fraud or force acquire a master's name,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Nature and justice must remain the same;—<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Nature imprints upon whate'er we see,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">That has a heart and life in it, BE FREE!"<br/></span></div>
<p class="cit"><span class="smcap">Cowper.</span><br/></p>
<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_24" id="Page_24"></SPAN></span></div>
<h2><SPAN name="ETHIOPIA" id="ETHIOPIA"></SPAN>ETHIOPIA.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY FRANCES E. W. HARPER.</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Yes, Ethiopia yet shall stretch<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Her bleeding hands abroad;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Her cry of agony shall reach<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Up to the throne of God.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">The tyrant's yoke from off her neck,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">His fetters from her soul,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">The mighty hand of God shall break,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And spurn the base control.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Redeemed from dust and freed from chains,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Her sons shall lift their eyes;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">From cloud-capt hills and verdant plains<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Shall shouts of triumph rise.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Upon her dark, despairing brow<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Shall play a smile of peace;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">For God shall bend unto her woe,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And bid her sorrows cease.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">'Neath sheltering vines and stately palms<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Shall laughing children play,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And aged sires with joyous psalms<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Shall gladden every day.<br/></span>
<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_25" id="Page_25"></SPAN></span><br/>
<span class="i0">Secure by night, and blest by day,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Shall pass her happy hours;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Nor human tigers hunt for prey<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Within her peaceful bowers.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Then, Ethiopia, stretch, O stretch<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Thy bleeding hands abroad!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Thy cry of agony shall reach<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And find redress from God.<br/></span></div>
</div>
<h2><SPAN name="THE_HOUR_OF_FREEDOM3" id="THE_HOUR_OF_FREEDOM3"></SPAN>THE HOUR OF FREEDOM.<SPAN name="FNanchor_3_3" id="FNanchor_3_3"></SPAN><SPAN href="#Footnote_3_3" class="fnanchor">[3]</SPAN></h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY WILLIAM LLOYD GARRISON.</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">The hour of freedom! come it must.<br/></span>
<span class="i2">O hasten it, in mercy, Heaven!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">When all who grovel in the dust<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Shall stand erect, their fetters riven;<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">When glorious freedom shall be won<br/></span>
<span class="i2">By every caste, complexion, clime;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">When tyranny shall be o'erthrown,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And <i>color</i> cease to be a <i>crime</i>.<br/></span></div>
</div>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_26" id="Page_26"></SPAN></span></p>
<h2><SPAN name="WILLIAM_BOEN" id="WILLIAM_BOEN"></SPAN>WILLIAM BOEN.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY L. MARIA CHILD.</p>
<p>William Boen was born in 1735, one hundred
and thirty years ago. He was the slave
of a man who lived near Mount Holly, in New Jersey.
His master and most of the neighbors belonged to the
Society of Friends, commonly called Quakers. That
Society made it a rule that none of their members should
hold a slave, long before the people of any other sect
were convinced that slavery was wrong. But at the
time William Boen was born some of the Quakers did
hold slaves, though many of their members were preaching
against it.</p>
<p>They were a very friendly and conscientious people,
and as William grew up among them he naturally imbibed
many of their ideas. However, like most boys,
he did not think very seriously about religion, until the
importance of it was impressed upon his mind by the following
circumstance. In the time of the old French war,
when he was a mere lad, his master sent him into the
woods to cut down trees. The Indians were fighting on
the side of the French, and they often killed the Americans.
Some of them came into the neighborhood of
Mount Holly; and when he went home at night, after his
day's work in the woods, he would often hear that Indians
had been lurking about in the neighborhood, and that
somebody had been shot by their sharp arrows. This
made him very much afraid to work alone in the woods.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_27" id="Page_27"></SPAN></span>
He was always thinking that Indians might be hidden
among the bushes; and if a bird flew off her nest it
sounded to him like the whizzing of an arrow. It was
very still in the forest, and it seemed very solemn to look
up at the sky through the tall trees. William thought to
himself, "What if the Indians should kill me before I
have any time to think about it? Am I fit to die?"
He thought he was not fit to die, and he longed earnestly
to know what he ought to do to become fit to die. He
had heard the Quakers talk about a light which God had
placed in the soul, to show men what was wrong. And
he said it went through his mind "like a flaming sword,"
that if he would be fit to die he must follow this inward
light in every particular, even in the most trifling things.
So he began to be very thoughtful about every action of
his life; and if he felt uneasy about anything he was
tempted to do, he said to himself, "This is the inward
light, showing me that the thing is wrong. I will not do
it." Pursuing this course, he became careful not to do
anything which did not bring peace to his soul; and as
the soul can never be peaceful when it disobeys God, he
was continually travelling toward Zion while he strove
to follow this inward light in his soul; and the more humbly
he tried to follow it, the clearer the light became.
He did not always keep in the straight path. Sometimes
he did or said something wrong; then peace went away
from his mind. But he confessed his sin before God,
and prayed for strength not to do wrong any more. By
humility and obedience he again found the path of peace.
Religion comes in many different ways to human souls.
This was the way it came to William Boen.</p>
<p>All who knew him saw that his religious feeling was
deep and sincere, for it brought forth fruit in his daily<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_28" id="Page_28"></SPAN></span>
life. He never made others unhappy by indulging freaks
of temper. He was extremely temperate, scrupulously
honest, and very careful never to say anything but the
exact truth. His character was so excellent that all the
neighbors respected and trusted him. Many said it was
a shame to keep him in slavery, and his master became
uneasy about it. People said to him, from time to time,
"William, thy master talks of letting thee be free." He
heard it so often, that it became an old story, and he
thought nothing would ever come of it. But one day
his master was walking with him as he went to his work
in the fields, and suddenly he inquired whether he would
like to be free. William was silent for a while, and then
began to talk about the work he was to do. But the
question dwelt on his mind and excited his hopes. He
told one of his friends about it, and when he was asked,
"What didst thou say, William?" he replied, "I did not
say anything; for I thought he might <i>know</i> I would like
to be free."</p>
<p>When he was nearly twenty-eight years old his master
offered to make a contract with him by which he could
obtain his freedom. He was soon after married to a
worthy young woman, and by industry and strict economy
they were able in a few years to buy a few acres of land,
and build a comfortable house. He led a peaceful and
diligent life, doing good to others whenever he could, and
harming no one. His conscience was extremely tender.
He would never eat anything made of sugar manufactured
by slaves, and he never would wear any garments made
of cotton raised by slave labor. He thought Slavery was
so wrong, that he did not feel easy to connect himself
with it, even in the remotest degree.</p>
<p>He was equally scrupulous about telling the truth.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_29" id="Page_29"></SPAN></span>
One of his neighbors, a rich white man, was very much
in the habit of borrowing his tools. One day, when he
had been using his grindstone, he thanked him for it, and
William answered, in the customary way, "Thou art welcome."
But soon he began to ask himself, "Was that
the exact truth?" His mind was troubled by doubts
about it, and finally he went to his neighbor, and said,
"When I told thee thou wert welcome, I spoke mere
complimentary words, according to custom; for the truth
is, I do honestly think thou art better able to have a
grindstone of thy own, than I am."</p>
<p>He had also a very nice sense of justice with regard
to the rights of property. Nothing would induce him to
use what belonged to another person without first obtaining
leave. One day, when he was mowing in the
meadows, he accidentally killed a fat partridge with his
scythe. The other workmen advised him to take it home
for his wife to roast. But he replied, "Nay, the partridge
does not belong to me, it belongs to the owner of
the meadow." Accordingly he carried it to his employer.
Another time, when he was working with others in the
woods, they found an empty cabin, wherein they stowed
their provisions, and lodged for a fortnight, till they had
finished cutting the timber. After William returned
home he took an early opportunity to tell the owner of
the cabin what he had done, and to offer payment for the
accommodation.</p>
<p>He constantly attended Quaker meetings, and followed
their peculiar customs in dress and language; but he was
not admitted into full membership with that religious
society till he was nearly eighty years old, though he
had made application to join it thirty years before.</p>
<p>He was scrupulously neat in his person. His linen<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_30" id="Page_30"></SPAN></span>
was always very white, and his light drab-colored clothes
showed no speck of dirt. He wore his beard long, and
as he grew old it became very white; his curly hair also
was white as snow. His dark face was very conspicuous
in the midst of all this whiteness, and gave him an
odd appearance. But he had such a friendly, pleasant
expression of countenance, and there was so much modest
dignity in his manners, that he inspired respect. A
stranger once said to one of his wealthy neighbors, "I
wonder that boys and giddy young folks don't ridicule
that old black man, his dress and appearance are so very
peculiar." The neighbor replied, "William Boen is a
religious man, and everybody respects him. The light-minded
are so much impressed by his well-known character,
that they are restrained from making fun of his singular
appearance."</p>
<p>He died in his ninetieth year; not from any disease,
but the mere weakness of old age. His faculties were
clear, and his mind serene and cheerful to the last. He
spoke of his approaching death with the greatest composure;
saying that he had no wish about the manner of
his exit from this life, that he was resigned to the Divine
will in all things.</p>
<p>One of the last things he said was, "I am glad to see
that the feeling against slavery is growing among the
Society of Friends. Once I felt as if I was alone in my
testimony against that wicked system."</p>
<p>After his death, the Society of Friends at Mount
Holly wrote a Memorial concerning his character, which
was read in their Yearly Meeting. It concluded thus:
"In early life, he was concerned 'to do justly, love
mercy, and walk humbly with his God.' By close attention
to the light of Christ within, he was enabled, not<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_31" id="Page_31"></SPAN></span>
only to bear many precious testimonies faithfully to the
end of his days, but also to bring forth those fruits of the
spirit which redound to the glory of God and the salvation
of the soul. As he lived, so he died,—a rare pattern
of a self-denying follower of Christ. 'Mark the
perfect man, and behold the upright; for the end of that
man is peace.'"</p>
<h2><SPAN name="ANECDOTE_OF_GENERAL_WASHINGTON" id="ANECDOTE_OF_GENERAL_WASHINGTON"></SPAN>ANECDOTE OF GENERAL WASHINGTON.</h2>
<p>During the war of the Revolution, Primus Hall was the
colored servant of Colonel Pickering, with whom General
Washington often held long consultations. One night, finding
they must be engaged till late, he proposed to sleep in the
Colonel's tent, provided there was a spare blanket and straw.
Primus, who was always eager to oblige the Commander-in-Chief,
said, "Plenty of straw and blankets."</p>
<p>When the long conference was ended, the two officers lay
down to rest on the beds he had prepared. When he saw
they were asleep, he seated himself on a box, and, leaning his
head on his hand, tried to take as comfortable a nap as he
could. General Washington woke in the night, and seeing
him nodding there, called out, "Primus!" The servant
started to his feet, and exclaimed, "What do you wish for,
General?"</p>
<p>"You told me you had plenty of straw and blankets," replied
Washington; "but I see you are sitting up all night for
the sake of giving me your bed."</p>
<p>"It is no matter about me," rejoined Primus.</p>
<p>"Yes, it is," replied General Washington. "If one of us
must sit up, I will take my turn. But there is no need of
that. The blanket is wide enough for two. Come and lie
down with me."</p>
<p>Primus, who reverenced the Commander-in-Chief as he did
no other mortal, protested against it. But Washington threw
open the blanket, and said, "Come and lie down, I tell you!
There is room enough for both, and I insist upon it."</p>
<p>The tone was too resolute to admit of further parley, and
the General and his colored friend slept comfortably under the
same blanket till morning.</p>
<hr class="chap" /><p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_32" id="Page_32"></SPAN></span></p>
<h2><SPAN name="PRAYER_OF_THE_SLAVE" id="PRAYER_OF_THE_SLAVE"></SPAN>PRAYER OF THE SLAVE.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY BERNARD BARTON.</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">O Father of the human race!<br/></span>
<span class="i2">The white, the black, the bond, the free,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Thanks for thy gift of heavenly grace,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Vouchsafed through Jesus Christ to me.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">This, 'mid oppression's every wrong,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Has borne my sinking spirits up;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Made sorrow joyful, weakness strong,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And sweetened Slavery's bitter cup.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Hath not a Saviour's dying hour<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Made e'en the yoke of thraldom light?<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Hath not thy Holy Spirit's power<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Made bondage freedom? darkness bright?<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Thanks then, O Father! for the gift<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Which through thy Gospel thou hast given,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Which thus from bonds and earth can lift<br/></span>
<span class="i2">The soul to liberty and heaven.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">But not the less I mourn their shame,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Who, mindless of thy gracious will,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Call on the holy Father's name,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Yet keep their brethren bondmen still.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Forgive them, Lord! for Jesus' sake;<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And when the slave thou hast unbound,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">The chains which bind the oppressor break!<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Thus be thy love's last triumph crowned.<br/></span>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_33" id="Page_33"></SPAN></span></p>
</div>
</div>
<h2><SPAN name="TOUSSAINT_LOUVERTURE" id="TOUSSAINT_LOUVERTURE"></SPAN>TOUSSAINT L'OUVERTURE.</h2>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i2">"Everywhere thy name shall be<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Redeemed from color's infamy;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And men shall learn to speak of thee<br/></span>
<span class="i0">As one of earth's great spirits, born<br/></span>
<span class="i0">In servitude and nursed in scorn,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Casting aside the weary weight<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And fetters of its low estate,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">In that strong majesty of soul<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Which knows no color, tongue, or clime,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Which still hath spurned the base control<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Of tyrants, through all time."<br/></span></div>
<p class="cit"><span class="smcap">John G. Whittier.</span></p>
</div>
<p>On the western coast of Africa, a tribe called the Arradas
are said to be superior to most of the other
tribes in intelligence and strength of will. The son of
their chief, named Gaou-Guinou, was seized by a prowling
band of slave-traders, one day when he was out hunting.
He was packed in the hold of a European ship, with
a multitude of other unfortunate victims, and carried to
the island of Hayti to be sold. This is one of the largest
of the West India Islands, and lies between Cuba and
Porto Rico. It was first discovered by Spaniards, who
found it inhabited by mild-tempered Indians, leading a
very simple and happy life. These natives called their
island Hayti, which in their language signified a Land of
Mountains. A lofty ridge of mountains runs across it,
and gives it a solemn, dreary appearance, when seen in
the distance. But it is a very beautiful and fertile island.
The high, rocky precipices, piled one above another, look
down on broad flowery plains, flowing with water, and<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_34" id="Page_34"></SPAN></span>
loaded with tropical fruits. When the Spaniards established
a colony there, they introduced the cultivation of
sugar, cotton, and coffee, to supply the markets of Europe.
They compelled the native Indians to work so
hard, and treated them so badly, that the poor creatures
died off very fast. Then they sent men in ships to
Africa to steal negroes to work for them. They founded
a city in the eastern part of the island, and named it
St. Domingo; and the whole island came to be called by
that name by European nations.</p>
<p>The French afterward took possession of the western
part of the island. Their principal city was named
Cap Fran�ois, which means French Cape. The African
prince Gaou-Guinou was sold in the market of that city.
He was more fortunate than slaves generally are. He
was bought by the manager of a sugar plantation belonging
to a French nobleman, named the Count de Breda.
He was kind-hearted, and was very careful to employ
none but humane men to take charge of his laborers.
The condition of the young African was also less desolate
than it would have been, by reason of his finding on
the Breda estate several members of the Arradas tribe,
who, like him, had been stolen from their homes. They
at once recognized him as the son of their king, and
treated him with the utmost respect. In process of time
he married a black slave, who is said to have been handsome
and virtuous. They joined the Roman Catholic
Church, which was the established religion of France and
the French islands. Of their eight children, the oldest,
born in 1743, one hundred and twenty-two years ago,
was named Toussaint. The day of his birth is not certainly
known. It has been said to have been on the
20th of May. But, from his name, it seems more likely<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_35" id="Page_35"></SPAN></span>
that it was on the 1st of November. In Catholic countries,
almost every day of the year is set apart to the
worship of some saint; and a child born on the day of
any particular saint is very apt to receive his name from
that day. The first of November is a festival of the
church, called All Saints' Day; and Toussaint, in the
French language, means All Saints.</p>
<p>In the neighborhood of Gaou-Guinou lived a very honest,
religious old black man, named Pierre Baptiste. He
had been in the service of Jesuit missionaries, and had
there learned to read and write, also a little of geometry.
By help of the Catholic Prayer-Book he learned some
prayers in Latin, and found out their meaning in French.
This man stood godfather for Toussaint at his baptism,
and as the boy grew older it was his pleasure to teach
him what little he himself knew. The language of the
Arradas tribe was always spoken in the family of Gaou-Guinou,
but from his godfather Toussaint learned to
speak tolerably good French, which was the language of
the whites in the western part of St. Domingo. It is
said that Gaou-Guinou was allowed to cultivate a little
patch of ground for his family, and that some of his
fellow-slaves were permitted to assist him occasionally.
This indulgence indicates that he stood well in his master's
opinion. But, in common with other slaves, it is
probable that he and his wife toiled early and late in the
fields or the sugar-house, and that their family were huddled
together in a hut too small to allow of their observing
the laws of cleanliness or modesty.</p>
<p>For several years Toussaint was so feeble and slender
that his parents called him by a name which signified
"The Little Lath." But he gained strength as he grew
older; and by the time he was twelve years old he could
beat all the boys in running, jumping, and leaping.</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_36" id="Page_36"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>It was the business of young slaves to tend the flocks
and herds. They generally neglected and abused the
creatures under their care, because they themselves were
accustomed to hard treatment. But Toussaint was of a
kindly disposition, and there was less violence on his
master's plantation than elsewhere. It was remarked
in the neighborhood that he differed from other boys in
his careful and gentle treatment of the animals under his
care. He was naturally a silent and thoughtful child,
and probably this tendency was increased by being much
alone, watching the browsing cattle in the stillness of the
great valleys. Perhaps also the presence of the mountains
and the sky made him feel serious and solemn. His
pious godfather told him legends of Catholic saints, which
he had heard among the missionaries. All these things
combined to give him a religious turn of mind, even in
his boyhood. From his own father he learned a great
deal about Africa and the customs that prevailed in the
tribe of his grandfather, King of the Arradas; also the
medicinal qualities of many plants, which afterward
proved very useful to him. Nothing is recorded of
the moral and intellectual character of his father; but
Toussaint always respected him highly, and when he was
himself an old man he spoke of him as a good parent,
who had trained him well by lessons of honor and virtue.</p>
<p>Toussaint Breda, as he was called, from the name of
the estate on which he worked, early acquired a reputation
for intelligence, sobriety, and industry. The Manager
of the estate, M. Bayou de Libertas, was so much
pleased with his conduct and manners that he made him
his coachman, a situation much coveted by the slaves, as
being more easy and pleasant than most of their tasks.
His kindness to animals fitted him for the care of horses,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_37" id="Page_37"></SPAN></span>
and he was found as faithful in this new business as he
had been while he was herds-boy. He was afterward
promoted to an office of greater trust, being made steward
of the sugar-house.</p>
<p>Having arrived at manhood, he began to want a home
of his own. Most of the slaves took up together without
any form of marriage, that being one of the bad customs
which grows out of Slavery. But Toussaint was religious,
and it would have troubled his conscience to live
in that bad way. He had become attached to a widow
named Suzan, who had one little son called Placide. She
was not handsome, but he loved her for her good sense,
good temper, and modest manners. They were married
according to the ceremonies of the Catholic Church. He
adopted her little boy, and brought him up as tenderly as
he did his own children. The Manager allowed him a
small patch of ground for vegetables, and all the hours
they could snatch from plantation labors he and his wife
devoted to the cultivation of their little garden. M.
Bayou de Libertas was such a humane and considerate
man that life in his service seems to have been as happy
as the condition of slaves can be. Long afterward, Toussaint,
speaking of this period of his life, said: "My wife
and I went hand in hand to labor in the fields. We were
scarcely conscious of the fatigues of the day. Heaven always
blessed our toil. We had abundance for ourselves,
and the pleasure of giving to other blacks who needed it.
On Sundays and festival days my wife, my parents, and
myself went to church. Returning to our cottage we
had a pleasant meal, passed the remainder of the day in
family intercourse, and closed it by prayer, in which all
took part."</p>
<p>Thus contented in his humble station, and faithfully<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_38" id="Page_38"></SPAN></span>
performing its duties, he gained the respect and confidence
of both blacks and whites. Many of the slaves in
the French colonies were cruelly treated, as is always the
case wherever Slavery exists. Toussaint could not avoid
seeing a great deal of wrong and suffering inflicted on
people of his color, and he was doubtless grateful to God
that his lot was so much better than theirs. But he was
too intelligent and thoughtful not to question in his own
mind why either he or they should be held in bondage
merely on account of the complexion which it had pleased
God to give them. He was fond of reading, and M.
Bayou de Libertas, contrary to the usual custom, allowed
him the use of his books. He read one volume at a time,
and tried to understand it thoroughly. He devoted every
spare moment to it, and while he was at work he was
busily thinking over what he had read. It took complete
possession of his soul for the time, and he would repeat
extracts from it to his companions for weeks after. In
this earnest way he read several books of ancient history,
biography, and morals, and a number of military books.
There was a French author, called the Abb� Raynal,
who was much opposed to Slavery. In some way or
other, one of his books fell into the hands of Toussaint
Breda, and made a deep impression on him. It contained
the following sentence: "What shall be done to overthrow
Slavery? Self-interest alone governs kings and nations.
We must look elsewhere. A courageous chief is all the
negroes need. Where is he? Where is that great man
whom Nature owes to her vexed, oppressed, and tormented
children? He will doubtless appear. He will
come forth and raise the sacred standard of Liberty.
This venerable signal will gather round him his companions
in misfortune. More impetuous than the torrents,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_39" id="Page_39"></SPAN></span>
they will everywhere leave the indelible traces of their
just resentment. Everywhere people will bless the name
of the hero who shall have re-established the rights of the
human race."</p>
<p>When the Abb� Raynal wrote those prophetic words,
he did not foresee that they would meet the eye of the
very man he called for; and the humble slave, when he
read them, did not hear in them the voice of his own
destiny.</p>
<p>While he was diligently toiling for his humane masters,
and seizing every opportunity to increase his small
stock of knowledge, the island of St. Domingo was growing
very rich by agriculture and commerce. The planters
acquired enormous wealth, built splendid houses, and
lived in luxury, laziness, and dissipation, upon the toil of
the poor unpaid negroes. Twenty thousand slaves were
imported from Africa every year, to make up the deficiency
of those who were killed by excessive toil and
cruel treatment. These new victims, men and women,
had the name of their purchaser branded on their breast-bones
with red-hot iron.</p>
<p>But men never violate the laws of God without suffering
the consequences, sooner or later. Slavery was producing
its natural fruits of tyranny and hatred, cruelty
and despair. The reports of barbarity on one side and
suffering on the other attracted attention in Europe;
and benevolent and just men began to speak and write
against Slavery as a wicked and dangerous institution.
The Abb� Gregoire, a humane Bishop of the Catholic
Church, introduced the agitating question into the French
Assembly, a body similar to our Congress. He also
formed a society called <i>Les Amis de Noirs</i>, which means
"The Friends of the Blacks." Of course, this was very<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_40" id="Page_40"></SPAN></span>
vexatious to slaveholders in the French colonies. They
knew very well that if the facts of Slavery were made
known, every good man would cry out against it. Political
parties were formed in St. Domingo. Some of the
planters wanted to secede from France, and set up an
independent government. Others wanted to increase
their political power by having a Colonial Assembly
established in the island, by means of which they could
mainly manage their own concerns as they chose. For
this purpose they sent deputies to France. But their
request gave rise to the question who should have the
right to be members of such an Assembly; and, for the
following reasons, that question was very annoying to the
haughty slaveholders of St. Domingo.</p>
<p>In the United States of America, slaveholders made
a law that "the child shall follow the condition of the
<i>mother</i>"; consequently, every child of a slave-woman
was born a slave, however light its complexion might
be. This was a very convenient arrangement for white
fathers, who wanted to sell their own children. In the
French colonies, the law was, "the child shall follow the
condition of its <i>father</i>." The consequence was, that all
the children the planters of St. Domingo had by their
slaves were born free. This was, of course, a numerous
class. In fact, their numbers were two thirds as great
as those of the whites. There were at that time in St.
Domingo thirty thousand whites, twenty thousand free
mulattoes, and five hundred thousand black slaves. Not
unfrequently the white planters sent their mulatto children
to France to be educated like gentlemen. Many
of them acquired great wealth and held numerous slaves.
But they were a class by themselves. However rich and
educated they might be, they were kept trampled down<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_41" id="Page_41"></SPAN></span>
in a degraded and irritating position, merely on account
of their color. They despised the negro slaves, from
whom they had descended on the mother's side; and
they in their turn were despised by the whites, whose
children they were, because their color connected them
with the enslaved race. They were not allowed to be
doctors, lawyers, or priests; they could hold no public
office; they could not inherit the name or the property
of their fathers; they could not attend school with white
boys, or sit at a white man's table, or occupy the same
portion of a church with him, or be buried in the same
graveyard. They were continually insulted by whites,
but if they dared to give a blow in return, the penalty
was to have the right hand cut off. This class of free
mulattoes claimed that, being numerous and wealthy, and
the payers of taxes, they had a right to send representatives
to the Colonial Assembly to look after their interests.
They had the more hopes of gaining this point,
because a great Revolution was then going on in France,
and the friends of liberty and equality were daily growing
stronger there. When the white planters sent deputies
to France, the mulattoes sent deputies also, with a
present of more than a million of dollars, and an offer to
mortgage a fifth part of all their property toward the
payment of the French national debt. All they asked in
return was that the law should put them on an equality
with white men. Being slaveholders, they manifested
the same selfishness that white slaveholders did. They
declared that they asked redress of grievances only for
oppressed <i>freemen</i>; that they had no wish to change the
condition of the negroes, who were slaves.</p>
<p>This petition was drawn up in 1790, and sent to Paris
by a wealthy colored man named Og�. It excited lively<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_42" id="Page_42"></SPAN></span>
discussion in the National Assembly of France. One of
the members, named Lamoth, who owned large estates in
St. Domingo, said: "I am one of the largest proprietors
in that island; but I would lose all that I possess there
rather than disown principles which justice and humanity
have consecrated. I am not only in favor of admitting
men of color into the Colonial Assemblies, but I also go
for the emancipation of the negro slaves." After animated
discussion, the reply received by the mulatto deputies
from the President of the Assembly was: "No portion
of the French nation shall in vain claim its rights
from the representatives of the French people."</p>
<p>When the white planters of St. Domingo heard of
this, they were filled with wrath. In one place, a mulatto
named Lacombe, whose only crime was that he had
signed the petition, was seized and hung. In another
place, the mob seized a highly respected old white magistrate
and cut off his head, because he had drafted for
the mulattoes a very moderate petition, begging to be
released from some of the hardships under which they
had so long suffered. When the colored deputy Og�
returned from France and demanded that mulattoes
should have the rights of citizenship, which had been
decreed to them by the French Assembly, soldiers were
sent to seize him, and he was sentenced to have all his
limbs broken on a wheel, and then to have his head
cut off.</p>
<p>Besides the classes of which I have spoken there was
another class in St. Domingo called <i>petit blancs</i>, which
means small whites. They were so called to distinguish
them from the large landed proprietors. They occupied
a position not unlike that of the class known as "poor
whites" in the slaveholding portion of the United States.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_43" id="Page_43"></SPAN></span>
They were ready instruments to carry out the vengeance
of the infuriated planters. They seized every opportunity
to insult the free mulattoes, and to inflict cruelty and outrage
on the negro slaves. They went about as patrols,
traversing the plantations, and bursting into negro huts
at all times of night, under the pretence that they were
plotting insurrection. The poor ignorant slaves did not
understand what all this mobbing and murdering was
for; but finding themselves so much suspected and abused
without cause, they became weary of their lives. Many
committed suicide, others tried to poison their tormentors.
At Port au Prince an attempt was made to get up an
insurrection. Fifty slaves, suspected of being connected
with it, were beheaded, and their heads, stuck on poles,
were set up by the hedges in a row.</p>
<p>While the fire was thus kindling under their feet the
white planters came out in open defiance of the French
government, and refused to take the oath of allegiance.
They called on the English for aid, and offered to make
the island over to Great Britain. The mulattoes were
filled with dismay, for the French government was their
only hope. They had hitherto kept aloof from the negroes;
but now, seeing the necessity of curbing the power
of the white planters, at all hazards, they instigated the
already exasperated slaves to seize this favorable moment
of commotion and rise against their masters. They did
rise, on the 22d of August, 1791. All at once the sky
was red with the reflection of burning houses and cane-fields.
The cruelties which they had witnessed or suffered,
they now, in their turn, inflicted on white men,
women, and children. It was a horrible scene.</p>
<p>Toussaint was working as usual on the Breda estate,
when he heard that the planters had called in the aid<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_44" id="Page_44"></SPAN></span>
of the English, and that four thousand negroes had risen
in insurrection. He exerted his great influence with his
fellow-slaves to prevent the destruction of houses and
cane-fields on the Breda estate. For a month, he kept
the insurgents at bay, while he helped M. Bayou de
Libertas to convey a cargo of sugar on board a Baltimore
ship, for the support of his family, and aided his mistress
to collect such articles of value as could conveniently be
carried away. Then he secretly conveyed them to the
same ship; and it was an inexpressible relief to his heart
when he saw them sailing away, bound for the shores of
the United States.</p>
<p>The armed negroes increased in numbers, and marshalled
themselves under an intelligent leader named
Jean Fran�ois. When the French governor in St. Domingo
called upon them to lay down their arms, their
leaders replied for them: "We have never thought of
failing in the respect and duty we owe to the representatives
of the King of France. The king has bewailed our
lot and broken our chains. But those who should have
proved fathers to us have been tyrants, monsters, unworthy
the fruits of our labors. Do you ask the sheep to
throw themselves into the jaws of the wolf? To prove
to you, excellent sir, that we are not so cruel as you may
think, we assure you that we wish for peace with all
our souls; but on condition that all the whites, without
a single exception, leave the Cape. Let them carry with
them their gold and their jewels. All we seek is our
liberty. God grant that we may obtain it without shedding
of blood. Believe us, it has cost our feelings very
much to have taken this course. But victory, or death
for freedom, is our profession of faith; and we will maintain
it to the last drop of our blood."</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_45" id="Page_45"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>The negroes were mistaken in supposing that Louis
XVI., king of France, had broken their chains, or that
the king's party, called Royalists, were trying to do anything
for their freedom. It was the revolutionary party
in France, called Republicans, who had declared themselves
in favor of emancipating the negro slaves, and
giving the free mulattoes their civil rights. The main
body of the negroes had been kept in the lowest ignorance,
and of course could not understand the state of
political parties. The world was ringing with French
doctrines of liberty and equality, to be applied to men
of all colors; and they could not help hearing something
of what was so universally talked of. The Spaniards in
the eastern part of St. Domingo were allies of the French
king, and they wanted the negroes to help them fight the
French planters, who were in rebellion against the king.
In order to give them a strong motive for doing so, they
told them that Louis XVI. had been cast into prison in
France, and that they were going to kill him, because he
wanted to emancipate the slaves in his colonies. They
readily believed that it was so, because they saw their
masters in arms against the king. Therefore they called
their regiments "The King's Own," and carried flags on
which were inscribed, "Long live the King," "The
Ancient System of Government."</p>
<p>The slaveholders mounted the English cockade, and
entered into alliance with Great Britain, while their revolted
slaves joined the Spanish. The war raged horribly
on both sides. Jean Fran�ois was of a gentle disposition,
and disposed to be merciful; but the two other
leaders of the negroes, named Jeannot and Biassou, were
monsters of revenge and cruelty. The bleeding heads
of white men surrounded their camps, and the bodies<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_46" id="Page_46"></SPAN></span>
of black men hung on trees round the camps of the
planters.</p>
<p>This state of things shocked the soul of Toussaint
Breda. Much as he desired the freedom of his own
race, he was reluctant to join an enterprise marked by
so many cruelties. Conscience forbade him to enlist on
the side of the slaveholders, and he would gladly have
remained neutral; but he found that men of his own color
were suspicious of him, because he had adhered so faithfully
to M. Bayou de Libertas. He joined the black
insurgents; but, resolved not to take part in their barbarities,
he occupied himself with healing the wounded,—an
office for which he was well qualified by his tender
disposition and knowledge of medicinal plants.</p>
<p>After a while, however, the negroes were compelled
to retreat before the superior discipline of the white
troops; and feeling greatly the need of intelligent officers,
they insisted upon making Toussaint aide-de-camp
to Biassou, under the title of Brigadier. He desired,
above all things, that hostilities should cease, that the
negroes should return to their work, and that the planters
should consent to cease from oppressing them. A very
little justice and kindness would have pacified the revolted
slaves; but the slaveholders were so full of rage
and pride, that if a slave attempted to return to his master,
however sincere he might be, he was instantly put
to death. Three commissioners came from France to
try to negotiate a peace between the contending parties.
The blacks sent deputies to the Colonial Assembly to
help the French commissioners in this good work; but
the planters treated their overtures with haughtiness and
contempt.</p>
<p>It is said that Toussaint wept when he saw the hopes<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_47" id="Page_47"></SPAN></span>
of peace vanish. It was plain that his people must resist
their tyrants, or be forever hopelessly crushed. He
was then fifty years old, in the prime of his bodily and
mental strength. By becoming a leader he felt that he
might protect the ignorant masses, and restrain those who
were disposed to cruelty. Perhaps he remembered the
prediction of the Abb� Raynal, and thought that he was
the appointed deliverer,—a second Moses, sent by God
to bring his people out of bondage. From that time
henceforth he made it the business of his life to conquer
freedom for his race; but never in a bloodthirsty spirit.</p>
<p>Biassou was so enraged by the contemptuous manner
in which their deputies had been treated, that he gave
orders to put to death all the white prisoners in their
camps. But Toussaint remonstrated, and succeeded in
saving their lives. His superior intelligence gave him
great influence, and he always exerted it on the side of
humanity. He also manifested extraordinary courage
and sagacity in the very difficult position in which he
was placed. He was surrounded by conflicting parties,
fighting against each other, agreeing only in one thing,
and that was hostility to the negroes; all of them ready
to make the fairest promises, and to break them as soon
as they had gained their object. France was in a state
of revolutionary confusion, and rumors were very contradictory.
One thing was certain,—their former masters
were fighting against the king of France; and instinct
led them to take the other side. Toussaint deemed it
wisest to keep under the protection of their Spanish allies,
and fight with them for the king's party. By a succession
of battles, he gained possession of several districts
in the mountains, where he entrenched his forces strongly,
and tried to bring them under regular military discipline.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_48" id="Page_48"></SPAN></span>
He was very strict, and allowed no disobedience of orders.
He forbade his soldiers to go about plundering, or revenging
past injuries. His motto was, "No Retaliation,"—a
noble, Christian motto, totally disregarded by men
whose opportunities for enlightened education were a
thousand times greater than his. When he felt himself
secure in the mountain districts, he invited the white
planters of that region to return and cultivate the estates
which they had abandoned in their terror. He promised
them that their persons and property should be protected;
and he faithfully kept his word. In his language and in
his actions he was always saying to the whites, "Why
will you force us to fight? I cherish no revenge against
you. All I want is the freedom of my race." His energy
and ingenuity in availing himself of every resource and
supplying every deficiency were truly wonderful. On
one occasion a map was greatly needed, in order to plan
some important campaign, and no map could be procured.
Toussaint, having made diligent inquiries of various persons
well acquainted with the portion of country to be
traversed, employed himself in making a map. By help
of the little geometry taught him by his godfather, he
projected a map, and marked down the important towns,
mountains, and rivers, with the distances between them.</p>
<p>No trait in the character of Toussaint Breda was
stronger than his domestic affections. He was devotedly
attached to his wife and children, and he had not seen
them for seven months. At last an interval of quiet enabled
him to visit the Spanish part of the island, whither
he had sent them for security. The Spanish authorities,
in acknowledgment of his services, received him with the
greatest distinction. Toussaint thanked them, but humbly
ascribed his successes to a superintending Providence.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_49" id="Page_49"></SPAN></span>
Always strict in religious observances, he went to the
church to offer prayers. His general, the Spanish Marquis
Hermona, seeing him kneel to partake of the communion,
said: "In this lower world God visits no purer
soul than his."</p>
<p>But the Spaniards had no regard for the rights and
welfare of the negroes. They used them while they had
need of their help, and were ready to oppress them when
it served their own interests. News came from France
that the Republican party were triumphant, and that the
king had been beheaded. The Spanish had nothing further
to gain by adhering to the defeated Royalist party.
Accordingly, Spain and Great Britain entered into a
league to divide the island of St. Domingo between
them, and restore Slavery. On the contrary, the Republican
party in France, assembled in convention at
Paris, February, 1794, proclaimed freedom to the slaves
in all the French colonies; and as the government was
now in their hands, there was no doubt of their having
power to protect those they had emancipated. Under
these circumstances, there was but one course for Toussaint
to take. He left the Spanish and joined the French
forces, by whom he was received with acclamation. His
rude bands of untaught negroes had now become a well-disciplined
army. They were proud of their commander,
and almost worshipped him. Under his guidance, they
performed wonders, proving themselves equal to any
troops in the world. Toussaint was on horseback night
and day. It seemed as if he never slept. Wherever
he was needed, he suddenly appeared; and as he seemed
to be wanted in twenty places at once, his followers
thought he had some powers of witchcraft to help him.
But the witchcraft consisted in his superior intelligence,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_50" id="Page_50"></SPAN></span>
his remarkable activity, his iron constitution, and his iron
will. His heart was never of iron. In the midst of constant
warfare he paid careful attention to the raising of
crops; and if women and children, black or white, were
suffering with hunger, he caused them to be supplied
with food. He and his brave officers and troops everywhere
drove the English before them. The French
general Laveaux appointed him second to himself in
command; and, in his proclamation to that effect, he
declared: "This is the man whom the Abb� Raynal
foretold would rise to be the liberator of his oppressed
race."</p>
<p>One day, when he had gained some important advantage,
a white officer exclaimed, "General Toussaint
makes an opening everywhere." His black troops heard
the words, and feeling that he had made an opening for
<i>them</i>, from the dungeon of Slavery to the sunlight of
Freedom, they shouted, "<i>L'Ouverture</i>," "<i>L'Ouverture</i>";
which, being translated into English, means The Opening.
From that day henceforth he was called Toussaint
l'Ouverture.</p>
<p>The English general Maitland, finding him so formidable,
wished to have a conference with him to negotiate
terms of accommodation. The request was granted; and
such was his confidence in the black chieftain that he
went to his camp with only three attendants, through
miles of country full of armed negroes. One of the
French officers wrote to General Toussaint that it would
be an excellent opportunity to take the English commander
prisoner. General Maitland was informed of
this while he was on his way; but he said, "I will
trust General Toussaint. He never breaks his promise."
When he arrived, General Toussaint handed him<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_51" id="Page_51"></SPAN></span>
two letters, saying, "There is a letter I have received,
advising me to detain you as prisoner; and there is my
reply. I wish you to read them before we proceed to
business, that you may know I am incapable of such a
base action." The answer he had written was, "I have
promised this Englishman my protection, and he shall
have it."</p>
<p>The English, seeing little prospect of conquering him
by force, or outwitting him by stratagem, tried to bribe
him to their interest. They offered to make him king
of St. Domingo, to establish him with a sufficient naval
force, and give freedom to the blacks, if he would come
over to their side. But the English still held slaves in
the neighboring islands, while the French had proclaimed
emancipation in all their colonies. He felt grateful to
the Republican government of France, and he resolved
to stand by it. The only crown he coveted was the freedom
of his race. He pursued the English vigorously,
till he drove them from the island. Yet he had no desire
to harm them, any further than was inevitable for
the protection of his people. An English naval officer,
named Rainsford, being driven on the coast of St. Domingo
by a violent storm, was arrested as a spy. A
court-martial was held, at which General Christophe presided,
in the absence of General Toussaint. Rainsford
was convicted, and sentenced to die. He was put into
a dungeon to wait till the sentence was signed by General
Toussaint. The women of the island pitied the stranger,
and often sent him fruit and sweetmeats. When Toussaint
returned, he examined into the case, and said:
"The trial appears to have been fair, and the sentence
just, according to the rules of war. But why should we
execute this stranger? He is alone, and can do us no<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_52" id="Page_52"></SPAN></span>
harm. His death would break his mother's heart. Let
us have compassion on her. Let us send him home, that
he may tell the English what sort of people we are, and
advise them not to attempt to reduce us to Slavery."</p>
<p>Having cleared the island of foreign enemies, Toussaint
exerted all his abilities to restore prosperity. He discharged
the greater part of the regular troops, and sent
them to till the soil. At that time, men were afraid
to trust to immediate, unconditional emancipation; they
had not then learned by experiment that it is the wisest
policy, as well as the truest justice. Toussaint feared
that when the former slaves were disbanded from the
army they would sink into laziness and vice, and thus
cause the name of freedom to be evil spoken of. Therefore,
with the view of guarding public morals, he instituted
a kind of apprenticeship. He ordained that they
should work five years for their masters, on condition of
receiving one fourth of the produce, out of which the cost
of their subsistence was to be defrayed. Regulations
were made by which the laborers became a sort of proprietors
of the soil; but I do not know what were the
terms. He did everything to encourage agriculture, and
tried to impress on the minds of the blacks that the permanence
of their freedom depended in a great measure
upon their becoming owners and cultivators of land. He
proclaimed a general amnesty to men of all colors and all
parties, even to those who had fought with the English
against their own country. He invited the return of all
fugitives who were willing to become good citizens, and
by public discourses and proclamations promised them
pardon for the past and protection for the future. Before
any important measure was carried into execution,
he summoned all the people to church, where, after<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_53" id="Page_53"></SPAN></span>
prayers were offered, he discoursed to them upon the
prospects of the republic, and what he considered essential
to its future peace and prosperity. He ordered
prayers to be said night and morning at the head of the
regiments. The discipline of the army was so strict, that
some accused him of severity. But the soldiers almost
idolized him, which I think they would not have done,
if he had not proved to them that he was just as well as
strict. After such a long period of foreign and civil war,
it required a very firm and judicious hand to restore order
and security. His troops, once lawless and savage, had
become perfectly orderly under his regulations. They
committed no thefts on the plantations and no pillage in
the cities. He opened to all nations an unrestricted commerce
with St. Domingo; and he has the honor of being
the first ruler in the world who introduced a system of
free trade. In the distribution of offices, he sought out
the men that were best fitted, without regard to complexion.
In many things he seemed to favor the whites more
than the blacks; probably from his extreme fear of not
being impartial; perhaps also because he knew the whites
distrusted him and needed to be conciliated, while people
of his own color had entire confidence in him. But the
most obstinate prejudices gradually gave way before the
wisdom and uprightness of his government. White
planters, who had been accustomed to talk of him as a
revolted slave and a lawless brigand, began to acknowledge
that he was a conscientious man and a wise legislator.
A general feeling of security prevailed, activity
in business was restored, and wealth began to flow in
through its former channels.</p>
<p>But, with all his prudence and efforts at universal
conciliation, he could not at once heal the old animosities<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_54" id="Page_54"></SPAN></span>
that had so long rankled in the breasts of men. Some
of the returned French planters resumed their old habits
of haughtiness and contempt toward the negroes. Some
of the proprietors, both white and black, in their haste
to grow rich, overworked their laborers; and, in addition
to these causes of irritation, it was whispered round that
the whites were influencing the French government to restore
Slavery. In one of the northern districts a proposition
was made to disband the black troops. This excited
suspicion, and they rose in rebellion. Buildings
were fired, and three hundred whites slaughtered. Toussaint
hastened to the scene of action, and by assurances
and threats quelled the tumult. The command of that
district was in the hands of General Moyse, the son of
Toussaint's brother Paul. He disliked the system of
conciliation pursued toward the whites, and had expressed
his opinions in terms less respectful than was proper toward
a man of his uncle's age and character. The agricultural
returns from his district had been smaller than
from other portions of the island; and when Toussaint
remonstrated with him for neglecting that department,
he replied: "Whatever my old uncle may see fit to do,
I cannot consent to be the executioner of my race, by
causing them to be worked to death. All your orders
are given in the name of France. But to serve France
is to serve the interests of the whites; and I shall never
love the whites till they give me back the eye I lost in
battle." When the insurrection broke out in his district,
the relatives of the slaughtered whites complained
to General Toussaint that his nephew had not taken any
efficient measures to put down the riot; and the black insurgents
excused themselves by saying General Moyse
approved of their rising. A court-martial was held, and<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_55" id="Page_55"></SPAN></span>
General Moyse and several of the ringleaders were condemned
to be shot. The execution of this sentence
excited a good deal of ill-feeling toward Toussaint. He
was loudly accused of favoring the whites more than
he did his own color; and to this day it is remembered
against him in the island. It certainly is the harshest
action recorded of Toussaint l'Ouverture. But it must
be remembered that he had invited the whites to come
back, and had given them promises of protection, because
he thought the peace and prosperity of the island could
best be promoted in that way; and having done so, it
was his duty to see that their lives and property were
protected. Moreover, he knew that the freedom of his
race depended upon their good behavior after they were
emancipated, and that insurrections would furnish the
French government with a pretext for reducing them
to Slavery again. If he punished any of the ringleaders
with death, he could not, without partiality, pardon his
own nephew, who had been condemned by the same
court-martial. In this matter it is fair to judge Toussaint
by his general character, and that leaves no room
to doubt that severity was painful to him, and that when
he resorted to it he was actuated by motives for the public
good.</p>
<p>That he could forgive offences against himself was
shown by his treatment of the mulattoes, who made
trouble in the island about the same time. They had
never been pleased to see one of the black slaves, whom
they had always despised, placed in a situation which
made him so much superior to any of themselves. They
manifested their dissatisfaction in a variety of ways.
They did their utmost to increase the feeling that he
showed partiality to the whites. In several instances<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_56" id="Page_56"></SPAN></span>
attempts were made to take his life. At one time, the
plume in his military cap was shot away. On another
occasion, balls passed through his carriage, and his coachman
was killed; but he happened to be riding off on
horseback in another direction. This hostile feeling led
the mulattoes into an extensive conspiracy to excite rebellion
against his government. Toussaint was forewarned
of it, and the attempt was put down. Eleven of the
leaders were carried to the Cape and imprisoned. Toussaint
called a meeting of the civil and military authorities,
and ordered the building to be surrounded by black
troops while the mulatto prisoners were brought in under
guard. They looked extremely dejected, expecting nothing
but death. But he announced to them that, deeming
the forgiveness of injuries a Christian duty, he pardoned
what they had attempted to do against him. He gave
them money to defray their travelling expenses, told
them they were at liberty to return to their homes, and
gave orders that they should be protected on the way.
As he passed out of the building, they showered blessings
on his head, and the air was filled with shouts of "Long
live Toussaint l'Ouverture."</p>
<p>These outbreakings of old hatreds were local and short-lived.
The confidence in Toussaint's goodness and ability
was almost universal; and his popularity was so great with
all classes, that he might have made himself emperor, if
he would. But through all the changes in France he
had been faithful to the French government; and now to
the habit of loyalty was added gratitude to that government
for having proclaimed freedom to his race. Next
to the emancipation of his people, he sought to serve the
interests of France. Personal ambition never tempted
him from the path of duty. When the affairs of the<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_57" id="Page_57"></SPAN></span>
colony seemed to be arranged on a secure basis, he manifested
willingness to resign the authority which he had
used with so much wisdom and impartiality. He published
a proclamation, in which he said:—</p>
<p>"Penetrated with that which is set forth in our Lord's
Prayer, 'forgive us our transgressions, as we forgive
those who transgress against us,' I have granted a general
amnesty. Fellow-citizens, not less generous than
myself, endeavor to have the past forgotten. Receive
misled brethren with open arms, and let them in the
future be on their guard against the snares of bad men.
Civil and military authorities, my task is accomplished.
It now belongs to you to take care that harmony is no
more disturbed. Allow no one to reproach those who
went astray, but have now returned to their duty. But,
notwithstanding my proclamation of amnesty, watch bad
men closely, and do not spare them if they excite disturbance.
A sense of honor should guide you all. A true,
confiding peace is necessary to the prosperity of the country.
It must be your work to establish such a peace.
Take no rest until you have accomplished it."</p>
<p>The people refused to accept the resignation of their
"friend and benefactor," as they styled him. He replied:
"If I undertake the administration of civil affairs, I must
have a solid rock to stand on; and that rock must be a
constitutional government." Feeling the necessity of
laws and regulations suited to the altered state of the
country, he called a meeting of deputies from all the
districts to draft a constitution. Of these nine deputies
eight were white and one a mulatto. They were selected
for their learning and ability. Very likely Toussaint's
habitual caution led him to choose men from the
two classes that had been hostile to him, that there might<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_58" id="Page_58"></SPAN></span>
be no pretext for saying he used his popularity with the
blacks to carry any measure he wished.</p>
<p>Among other things, this constitution provided that
Slavery should never more exist in St. Domingo; that
all who were born there were free citizens of the French
republic. It also provided that offices were to be distributed
according to virtue and ability, without regard
to color. The island was to be ruled by one governor,
appointed for five years, with a proviso that the term
might be prolonged as a reward for good conduct. But
"in consideration of the important services rendered to
the country by General Toussaint l'Ouverture," he was
named governor for life, with power to appoint his successor.
This was early in the summer of 1800. The
constitution, approved by Toussaint and published, was
accepted by the people with solemn formalities and
demonstrations of joy. This new colonial government
was to go into operation provisionally, until it should
receive the sanction of the authorities in France.</p>
<p>General Napoleon Bonaparte was then at the head of
the French government, under the title of First Consul.
Governor Toussaint wrote to him, that, in the absence of
laws, after the revolution in St. Domingo, it had been
deemed best to draft a constitution. He added: "I
hasten to lay it before you for your approbation, and
for the sanction of the government which I serve. All
classes of citizens here have welcomed it with joy, which
will be renewed when it is sent back with the sanction
of the French government."</p>
<p>Some writers have accused Toussaint of personal ambition
because he consented to be governor for life. He
himself said it was because circumstances had given him
influence, which he could exert to unite a divided people;<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_59" id="Page_59"></SPAN></span>
and that he deemed changes of administration might be
injurious until the new order of things had become more
settled.</p>
<p>He assumed all the outward style that had been considered
befitting the rank of governor and commander-in-chief.
He had an elegant carriage and a number of
handsome horses. When he rode out, he was followed
by attendants in brilliant military dress, and he himself
wore a rich uniform. On stated days, he gave reception-parties,
to which magistrates, military officers, distinguished
strangers, and influential citizens were invited.
There was a good deal of splendor in the dresses on
such occasions; but he always appeared in the simple
undress uniform of a general officer. At these parties,
whites, blacks, and mulattoes mingled together with mutual
politeness, and it is said that the style of manners
was easy and elegant. All rose when the Governor
entered, and none seated themselves until he was seated.
This was a strange experience for a black man, who was
formerly a slave; and it had been brought about, under
the blessing of God, solely by the strength and excellence
of his own character. All prejudices gave way before
his uncommon intelligence, well-tried virtues, and courteous
dignity of manner.</p>
<p>Every evening he gave free audience to all the people
who chose to call. His dress was such as the landed proprietors
usually wore. However weary he might be, he
made the circuit of the rooms, and said something to each
one on the subjects most likely to interest them. He
talked with mothers about their children, and urged upon
them the great importance of giving them religious instruction.
Not unfrequently he examined the children
in their catechisms, and gave a few words of fatherly
advice to the young folks.</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_60" id="Page_60"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>He has been accused of vanity for assuming so much
pomp in his equipage and gentility in his dress. Doubtless
he had some vanity. No human being is free from
it. But I believe very few men, of any color, could
have passed through such extraordinary changes as he
did, and preserved their balance so well. In the style
he assumed he was probably somewhat influenced by motives
of policy. He was obliged to receive many distinguished
French gentlemen, and he knew they attached
great importance to dress and equipage. The blacks also
were fond of splendor, and it gratified them to see their
great chieftain appear in princely style. The free mulattoes,
who despised his mean birth, would have spared
no ridicule if he had been neglectful of outward appearances;
and in his peculiar situation it was important to
command respect in every way. His person also needed
every borrowed advantage that it could obtain. His figure
was short and slim, and his features were homely,
though his bright, penetrating eyes gave his face an
expression of animation and intelligence. With these
disadvantages, and a deficiency of education, betrayed
by imperfect grammar, it is wonderful how he swayed
assemblies of men whenever he addressed them. The
secret lay in his great earnestness. Whatever he said,
he said it with his whole soul, and therefore it took possession
of the souls of others.</p>
<p>Though he paid so much attention to external show
in public, his own personal habits were extremely simple
and frugal. There was a large public house at the Cape,
called The Hotel of the Republic, frequented by whites
and blacks, officers and privates. Toussaint l'Ouverture
often took a seat at the table in any chair that happened
to be vacant. If any one rose to offer him a higher seat,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_61" id="Page_61"></SPAN></span>
he would bow courteously, and reply, "Distinctions are
to be observed only on public occasions." His food
consisted of vegetable preparations, and he drank water
only. He had a wonderful capacity of doing without
sleep. During the years that so many public cares devolved
upon him, it is said he rarely slept more than two
hours out of the twenty-four. He thought more than he
spoke, and what he said was uttered in few words. Surrounded
as he was by inquisitive and treacherous people,
this habit of reserve was of great use to him. Enemies
accused him of being deceitful. The charge was probably
grounded on the fact that he knew how to keep his own
secrets; for there are many proofs that he was in reality
honest and sincere. It is singular how he escaped
the contagion of impurity which always pollutes society
where Slavery exists. But his respect and affection for
his wife was very constant, and he was always clean in
his manners and his language. A colored lady appeared
at one of his reception-parties dressed very low at the
neck, according to the prevailing Parisian fashion. When
he had greeted her, he placed a handkerchief on her
shoulders, and said in a low voice, "Modesty is the
greatest ornament of woman."</p>
<p>His ability and energy as a statesman were even more
remarkable than his courage and skill as a military leader.
He was getting old, and he was covered with the scars of
wounds received in many battles; but he travelled about
with wonderful rapidity, inspecting everything with his
own eyes, and personally examining into the conduct
of magistrates and officers. Often, after riding some
distance in a carriage, he would mount a swift horse
and ride off in another direction, while the coach went
on. In this way, he would make his appearance suddenly<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_62" id="Page_62"></SPAN></span>
at places where he was not expected, and ascertain
how things went on in his absence. It was a common
practice with him to traverse from one hundred to one
hundred and fifty miles a day. After giving his evening
audience to the people, he sat up late into the night
answering letters, of which he received not less than a
hundred daily. He dictated to five secretaries at once,
so long that he tired them all; and he examined every
letter when finished, that he might be sure his dictation
had not been misunderstood.</p>
<p>The eastern part of the island had been ceded to the
French by treaty, but had never been given up by the
Spanish, who still held slaves there. Complaints were
brought to General Toussaint that the Spaniards kidnapped
both blacks and mulattoes from the western
part of the island, where all were free, and carried
them off to sell them to slave-traders. Resolved to
destroy Slavery, root and branch, throughout the island,
in January, 1801, he marched into the Spanish territory
at the head of ten thousand soldiers. The Spanish blacks
were desirous to come under French dominion, in order
to secure their freedom, and the whites offered but slight
resistance. Having taken possession of the territory in
the name of the French republic, he issued a proclamation,
in which he declared that all past offences should
be forgotten, and that the welfare and happiness of Spaniards
and Frenchmen should be equally protected. He
then assembled his troops in the churches and caused
prayers of thanksgiving to be offered for the success of
their enterprise, almost without bloodshed. Most of the
wealthy Spanish slaveholders made arrangements to depart
to Cuba and other neighboring islands. But the
main body of the people received General Toussaint<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_63" id="Page_63"></SPAN></span>
with the greatest distinction. As he passed through the
principal towns, he was everywhere greeted with thunder
of artillery, ringing of bells, and loud acclamations of the
populace.</p>
<p>Under his wise and watchful administration all classes
were protected, and all parts of the country became prosperous.
The desolations occasioned by so many years of
warfare were rapidly repaired. Churches were rebuilt,
schools established, waste lands brought under cultivation,
and distances shortened by new and excellent roads.
The French commissioner Roume was struck with admiration
of his plans, and pronounced him to be "a philosopher,
a legislator, a general, and a good citizen." The
Frenchman, Lavoque, who was well acquainted with him
and the condition of the people, said to Bonaparte, "Sire,
let things remain as they are in St. Domingo. It is the
happiest spot in your dominions." The historian Lacroix,
though prejudiced against blacks, wrote, "That the island
was preserved to the French government was solely owing
to an old negro, who seemed to bear a commission
from Heaven." Strangers who visited St. Domingo expressed
their surprise to see cities rising from their ashes,
fields waving with harvests, and the harbors filled with
ships. Planters, who had fled with their families to various
parts of the world heard such good accounts of the
activity of business, and the security of property, that
many of them so far overcame their repugnance to be
governed by a negro as to ask permission to return.
This was easily obtained, and they were received by the
Governor without anything on his part which they might
deem offensive familiarity, but with a dignified courtesy
which prevented familiarity, or airs of condescension, on
their side. He had annually sent some token of remembrance<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_64" id="Page_64"></SPAN></span>
to M. Bayou de Libertas, then residing in the
United States. He now wrote to invite him to return
to St. Domingo. The invitation was gladly accepted.
When he arrived, he was received with marked kindness,
but with dignified reserve. Governor Toussaint
evidently did not wish bystanders to be reminded of the
former relation that existed between them as overseer
and slave. "Return to the plantation," said he, "and
take care of the interests of the good old master. See
that the blacks do their duty. Be firm, but just. You
will thus advance your own prosperity, and at the same
time increase the prosperity of the colony."</p>
<p>This return of the old slaveholders excited some uneasiness
among the black laborers. But Toussaint, who
often spoke to them in simple parables, sprinkled a few
grains of rice into a vessel of shot, and shook it. "See,"
said he, "how few grains of white there are among the
black."</p>
<p>At that time General Napoleon Bonaparte had become
very famous by his victories, and had recently been made
ruler of France. There were many points of resemblance
between his career and that of the hero of St. Domingo;
and it was a common thing for people to say, "Napoleon
is the First of the Whites, and Toussaint l'Ouverture
is the First of the Blacks." If General Toussaint had
known the real character of Napoleon, he would not have
felt flattered by being compared with such a selfish, tyrannical,
and treacherous man. But, like the rest of the
world, he was dazzled by his brilliant reputation, and felt
that it was a great honor to him to be called the "The
Black Napoleon." The vainest thing that is recorded
of him is that on one of his official letters to Bonaparte
he wrote, "To the First of the Whites, from the First<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_65" id="Page_65"></SPAN></span>
of the Blacks." It was a departure from his usual habits
of dignity, and was also poor policy; for Bonaparte had
been rendered vain by his great success, and he was under
the influence of aristocratic planters from St. Domingo,
who would have regarded it as a great insult to
couple their names with a negro. General Toussaint
soon had reason to suspect he had been mistaken in the
character of the famous man, whom he had so much admired.
He wrote several deferential letters to Bonaparte,
on official business; but the First Consul never condescended
to make any reply. It was soon rumored abroad
that proprietors of estates in St. Domingo, residing in
France, were urging him to send an army to St. Domingo
to reduce the blacks again to Slavery. Governor Toussaint
could not believe that the French government would
be persuaded to break the solemn promises it had made
to the colony. But when he sent General Vincent to
Paris to obtain Bonaparte's sanction to the new constitution,
the wicked scheme was found to be making rapid
progress. In vain General Vincent remonstrated against
it as a measure cruel and dangerous. In vain he represented
the contented, happy, and prosperous state of the
island. In vain did many wise and good men in Paris
urge that such a step would be unjust in itself and very
disgraceful to France. The First Consul turned a deaf
ear to all but the haughty old planters from St. Domingo.
The Legislative Assembly in France, though still talking
loudly about liberty and the rights of man, were not
ashamed to propose the restoration of Slavery and the
slave-trade in the colonies; and the wicked measure was
carried by a vote of two hundred and twelve against
sixty-five. In May, 1801, Bonaparte issued a decree to
that effect. But he afterwards considered it prudent to<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_66" id="Page_66"></SPAN></span>
announce that the islands of St. Domingo and Guadaloupe
were to be excepted.</p>
<p>When this news reached St. Domingo, the people were
excited and alarmed. They asked each other anxiously,
"How long shall we be excepted?" On that point no
assurances were given, and all suspected that the French
government was dealing with them hypocritically and
treacherously. The soul of Toussaint was on fire. If
the names of the men who voted for the restoration of
Slavery were mentioned in his presence, his eyes flashed
and his whole frame shook with indignation. He published
a proclamation, in which he counselled obedience to
the mother country, unless circumstances should make it
evident that resistance was unavoidable. In private, he
said to his friends: "I took up arms for the freedom of
my color. France proclaimed it, and she has no right
to nullify it. Our liberty is no longer in her hands; it
is in our own. We will defend it, or perish."</p>
<p>General Toussaint had sent his two eldest sons to Paris
to be educated. As a part of the plan of deception, General
Bonaparte invited the young men to visit him. He
spoke of their father as a great man, who had rendered
very important services to France. He told them he
was going to send his brother-in-law, General Le Clerc,
with troops to St. Domingo; but he assured them it was
not for any hostile purpose; it was merely to add to the
defence of the island. He wished them to go with General
Le Clerc and tell their father that he intended him
all protection, glory, and honor. The next day Bonaparte's
Minister of Marine invited the young men to a
sumptuous dinner, and at parting presented each with
a splendid military uniform. The inexperienced youths
were completely dazzled and deceived.</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_67" id="Page_67"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>In January, 1802, General Le Clerc sailed with sixty
ships and thirty thousand of Bonaparte's experienced
troops. When Governor Toussaint received tidings that
a French fleet was in sight, he galloped to the coast they
were approaching, to take a view of them. He was dismayed,
and for a moment discouraged. He exclaimed,
"All France has come to enslave St. Domingo. We
must perish." He had no vessels, and not more than
sixteen thousand men under arms. But his native energy
soon returned. The people manifested a determination
to die rather than be enslaved again. He resolved to
attempt no attack on the French, but to act wholly on
the defensive. Le Clerc's army attacked Fort Liberty,
killed half the garrison, and forced a landing on the island.
Toussaint entrenched himself in a position where
he could harass the invaders; and the peaceful, prosperous
island again smoked with fire and blood. Le Clerc,
still aiming to accomplish Bonaparte's designs by hypocrisy,
scattered proclamations among the blacks of St. Domingo,
representing that Toussaint kept them in a kind
of Slavery on the plantations, but that the French had
come to set them wholly free. This did not excite the
rebellion which he intended to provoke, but it sowed the
seeds of doubt and discontent in the minds of some. At
the same time that he was playing this treacherous game,
he sent Toussaint's two sons to their father, accompanied
by their French tutor, to deliver a letter from the First
Consul, which ought to have been sent three months before.
The letter was very complimentary to General
Toussaint; but it objected to the constitution that had
been formed, and spoke in a very general way about the
liberty which France granted to all nations under her
control. It counselled submission to General Le Clerc,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_68" id="Page_68"></SPAN></span>
and threatened punishment for disobedience. The tone
of the letter, though apparently peaceful and friendly,
excited distrust in the mind of General Toussaint, which
was increased by the fact that the letter had been so long
kept from him. Knowing the strength of his domestic
affections, orders had been given that if he surrendered,
his sons should remain with him, but if he refused they
were to return to the French camp as hostages. Though
his heart yearned toward his children, from whom he had
been so long separated, he said to their tutor: "Three
months after date you bring me a letter which promises
peace, while the action of General Le Clerc is war. I
had established order and justice here; now all is confusion
and misery. Take back my sons. I cannot receive
them as the price of my surrender. Tell General Le
Clerc hostilities will cease on our part when he stops the
progress of his invading army." His sons told him how
kindly they had been treated by Bonaparte, and what
promises he had made concerning St. Domingo,—promises
which had been repeated in the proclamation brought
by General Le Clerc. Toussaint had had too severe an
experience to be easily deceived by fair words. He replied:
"My sons, you are no longer children. You are
old enough to decide for yourselves. If you wish to be
on the side of France, you are free to do so. Stay with
me, or return to General Le Clerc, whichever you choose.
Either way, I shall love you always." Isaac, his oldest
son, had been so deceived by flattery and promises, that
he declared his wish to return to the French camp, feeling
very sure that his father would be convinced that
Bonaparte was their best friend. But Placide, his step-son,
said: "My father, I will remain with you. I dread
the restoration of Slavery, and I am fearful about the<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_69" id="Page_69"></SPAN></span>
future of St. Domingo." Who can tell what a pang went
through the father's heart when he embraced Isaac and
bade him farewell?</p>
<p>General Le Clerc was very angry when he found that
his overtures were distrusted. He swore that he would
seize Toussaint before he took his boots off. He forthwith
issued a proclamation declaring him to be an outlaw.
When General Toussaint read it to his soldiers, they cried
out with one accord, "We will die with you." He said
to his officers: "When the rainy season comes, sickness
will rid us of our enemies. Till then there is nothing
before us but flame and slaughter." Orders were given
to fire the towns as the French army approached, and to
deal destruction upon them in every way. He gathered
his army together at the entrance of the mountains, and,
aided by his brave generals Christophe and Dessalines,
kept up active skirmishing with the enemy. Horrible
things were done on both sides. The Bay of Mancenille
was red with the blood of negro prisoners slaughtered
by the French. The blacks, infuriated by revenge and
dread of Slavery, killed white men, women, and children
without mercy. General Dessalines was of a savage
temper, and incited his troops to the most ferocious
deeds.</p>
<p>But the natural kindliness of the negro character was
manifested on many occasions, even in the midst of this
horrible excitement. In many cases they guided their
old masters to hiding-places in the mountains or forests,
and secretly conveyed them food.</p>
<p>Toussaint, with only a plank to sleep on and a cloak
to cover him, was constantly occupied with planning attacks
and ambuscades, and preaching on Sundays, exhorting
the people, with fiery eloquence, to remember that<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_70" id="Page_70"></SPAN></span>
the cause of Liberty was the cause of God. General
Le Clerc, meanwhile, was disappointed to find so many
difficulties in the way of his wicked project. His troops
wilted under the increasing heat of the climate, and began
to murmur. He issued proclamations, promising, in the
most solemn manner, that the freedom of all classes in
St. Domingo should be respected. These assurances induced
several black regiments to go over to the French.
Toussaint's brother Paul, and two of his ablest generals,
Bellair and Maurepas, did the same. Still the Commander-in-Chief,
aided by Christophe and Dessalines,
kept up a stout resistance. But news came that fresh
troops were coming from France, and Christophe and
Dessalines had an interview with General Le Clerc, in
which, by fair promises, he succeeded in gaining them
over to the French side. A messenger was then sent to
ask for a conference with General Toussaint. Solemn
assurances were repeated that the freedom of the blacks
should be protected; and a proposition was made that he
should be colleague with General Le Clerc in the government
of the island, and that his officers should retain
their rank in the army. With reinforcements coming
from France, and with his best generals gained over,
Toussaint had no longer hopes of defeating the invaders,
though he might send out skirmishers to annoy
them. He had too little faith in the promises of General
Le Clerc to consent to take an oath of office under
him. He therefore replied: "I might remain a brigand
in the mountains, and harass you with perpetual warfare,
so far as your power to prevent it is concerned. But I
disdain fighting for mere bloodshed; and, in obedience
to the orders of the First Consul, I yield to you. For
myself, I wish to live in retirement; but I accept your
favorable terms for the people and the army."</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_71" id="Page_71"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>With four hundred armed horsemen he set out for the
Cape, to hold the proposed conference with General Le
Clerc. On the way, the people, thinking peace was secured
without the sacrifice of their freedom, hailed him
as their benefactor. Girls strewed flowers in his path,
and mothers held up their children to bless him. General
Le Clerc received him with a salute of artillery,
and made a speech in which he highly complimented
his bravery, magnanimity, and good faith, and expressed
a hope that, though he chose to live in retirement, he
would continue to assist the government of the island
by his wise counsels. In the presence of the troops on
both sides, he took an oath on the cross to protect the
freedom of St. Domingo. With the same solemn formalities,
General Toussaint promised that the treaty of peace
should be faithfully observed.</p>
<p>The next day, he explained fully to his officers and
soldiers what were the terms of the treaty, and impressed
upon their minds that such a promise could not
be violated without committing the sin of perjury. He
thanked them all for the courage and devotedness they had
shown under his command, embraced his officers, and bade
them an affectionate farewell. They shed tears, and expressed
the greatest reluctance to part with him; but he
told them that such a course would best conduce to public
tranquillity. The soldiers were inconsolable. They followed
him, calling out in the saddest tones, "Have you
deserted us?" He replied: "No, my children. Do not
be uneasy. Your officers are all under arms, and at their
posts."</p>
<p>Twelve years had passed since he was working on the
Breda estate, and seeing houses and cane-fields on fire in
every direction, had said to his wife, "The slaves have<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_72" id="Page_72"></SPAN></span>
risen." Since that time, his life had been one scene of
excitement, danger, ceaseless exertion, and overwhelming
responsibility. He had been commander-in-chief of the
armies of St. Domingo during five years, and governor
of the island about one year. Now, with a heart full
of anxiety for his people, but cheered by hopes of domestic
happiness, he retired, far from the scene of his official
splendor, to Ennery, a beautiful valley among the mountains.
Surrounded by his family, he busied himself with
clearing up the land and cultivating oranges, bananas,
and coffee. The people round about often came to him
for advice, and he freely assisted his neighbors in making
repairs and improvements. Strangers often visited him,
and when he rode abroad he was greeted with every
demonstration of respect.</p>
<p>General Le Clerc, meanwhile, was attacked by a new
and terrible enemy. His troops, unused to the climate,
were cut down by yellow fever, as a mower cuts grass.
In this situation, had Toussaint excited the blacks against
them, they might have been exterminated; but he had
sworn to observe the treaty, and he was never known
to break his word. The kind-hearted negroes, in many
cases, took pity on the suffering French soldiers; they
carried them many little comforts, and even took them
into their houses, and nursed them tenderly.</p>
<p>Meanwhile, General Le Clerc's difficulties increased.
His troops were dying fast under the influence of the
hot season; provisions were getting scarce; he wanted
to disband the negro troops that had joined him, but they
were wide awake and suspicious on the subject of Slavery,
and he dared not propose to disarm them. He was so
treacherous himself that he could not believe in the sincerity
of others. He was always suspecting that Tous<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_73" id="Page_73"></SPAN></span>saint
would again take command of the blacks and attack
the remnant of his army while it was enfeebled by disease.
Bonaparte also felt that the popularity of Toussaint
stood much in the way of his accomplishing the
design of restoring Slavery. It was desirable to get him
out of the way upon some pretext. The French officers
made him the object of a series of petty insults, and
wantonly destroyed the fruit on his grounds. By these
means they hoped to provoke him to excite an insurrection,
that they might have an excuse for arresting him.
His friends warned him that these continual insults and
depredations foreboded mischief, and that he ought not
to submit to them. He replied, "It is a sacred duty to
expose life when the freedom of one's country is in peril;
but to rouse the people to save one's own life is inglorious."</p>
<p>Finding private remonstrances of no use, he reported
to the French head-quarters that he and his neighbors
were much annoyed by the conduct of the French troops,
and that the people in the valley were made very uneasy
by their rude manners and their depredations on property.
He received a very polite answer from General Brunet,
inviting him to come to his house to confer with him on
that and other matters connected with the public tranquillity.
The letter closed with these words: "You will
not find all the pleasures I would wish to welcome you
with, but you will find the frankness of an honorable
man, who desires nothing but the happiness of the colony,
and your own happiness. If Madame Toussaint, with
whom it would give me the greatest pleasure to become
acquainted, could accompany you, I should be gratified.
If she has occasion for horses, I will send her mine.
Never, General, will you find a more sincere friend than
myself."</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_74" id="Page_74"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>Toussaint, who was sincerely desirous to preserve the
public peace, and who was too honest to suspect treachery
under such a friendly form, went to General Brunet's
head-quarters, with a few attendants, on the 10th of June,
1802. He was received with the greatest respect and
cordiality. His host consulted with him concerning the
interests of the colony; and they examined maps together
till toward evening, when General Brunet left the room.
An officer with twenty armed men entered, saying:
"The Captain-General has ordered me to arrest you.
Your attendants are overpowered. If you resist, you
are a dead man." Toussaint's first impulse was to defend
himself; but seeing it would be useless against such
numbers, he resigned himself to his hard fate, saying,
"Heaven will avenge my cause."</p>
<p>His papers were seized, his house rifled and burned,
his wife and children captured, and at midnight they
were all carried on board the French ship Hero, without
being allowed to take even a change of clothing.
His wrists were chained, he was locked in a cabin
guarded by soldiers with fixed bayonets, and not permitted
to hold any communication with his family. As
the vessel sailed away from St. Domingo, Toussaint,
gazing on the outline of its mountains for the last time,
said, "They have cut down the tree of Liberty; but the
roots are many and deep, and it will sprout again."</p>
<p>Toussaint l'Ouverture was even then incapable of imagining
the base designs against him. He supposed that
he had been accused of something, and was to be carried
to France for trial. Conscious of uniform fidelity to the
French government, he felt no uneasiness as to the result,
though the treachery and violence with which he
had been treated in return for his great services made<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_75" id="Page_75"></SPAN></span>
him very sad. Arrived on the shores of France, he was
removed to another vessel, and allowed only a few moments
to say farewell to his wife and children. They
embraced him with tears, and begged him to remember
them, who had always loved him so dearly.</p>
<p>From the vessel, instead of being carried to Paris for
trial, as he expected, he was hurried into a carriage, and,
followed by a strong guard, was carried to the dismal
Castle of Joux, near the borders of Switzerland. That
ancient castle stands among the mountains of Jura, on
the summit of a solid rock five hundred feet high. He
was placed in a deep, dark dungeon, from the walls of
which the water dripped continually. This was in August,
1802. But though it was summer elsewhere, it
was damp and cold in Toussaint's dreary cell. The
keeper was allowed about four shillings a day to provide
food for him; and one faithful servant, who had
accompanied the family from St. Domingo, was allowed
to remain with him.</p>
<p>His spirits were kept up for some time with the daily
expectation of being summoned to attend his trial. But
time passed on, and he could obtain no tidings from the
French government, or from his family. In a letter
to General Bonaparte, beseeching him to let him know
of what he was accused, and to grant him a trial, he
wrote:—</p>
<p>"I have served my country with honor, fidelity, and
integrity. All who know me will do me the justice to
acknowledge this. At the time of the revolution, I spent
all I had in the service of my country. I purchased but
one small estate, on which to establish my wife and family.
I neglected nothing for the welfare of St. Domingo. I
made it my duty and pleasure to develop all the resources<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_76" id="Page_76"></SPAN></span>
of that beautiful colony. Since I entered the service of
the republic I have not claimed a penny of my salary.
I have taken money from the treasury only for public
use. If I was wrong in forming a constitution, it was
through my great desire to do good, and thinking it
would please the government under which I served. I
have had the misfortune to incur your displeasure; but
I am strong in the consciousness of integrity and fidelity;
and I dare affirm that among all the servants of the state
no one is more honest than myself."</p>
<p>This letter is still in existence, and some of the words
are blotted out by tears that fell while the noble captive
was writing it. Bonaparte paid no attention to this manly
appeal. After weary waiting, Toussaint wrote again:—</p>
<p>"First Consul, it is a misfortune to me that I am not
known to you. If you had thoroughly known me while
I was in St. Domingo, you would have done me more
justice. I am not learned; I am ignorant: but my heart
is good. My father showed me the road to virtue and
honor, and I am very strong in my conscience in that
matter. If I had not been so devoted to the French
government I should not be here. All my life I have
been in active service, and now I am a miserable prisoner,
without power to do anything, sunk in grief, and with
health impaired. I ask you for my freedom, that I may
labor for the support of my family. For my venerable
father, now a hundred and five years old, who is blind,
and needs my assistance; for my dearly loved wife, who,
separated from me, cannot, I fear, endure the afflictions
that overwhelm her; and for my cherished family,
who have made the happiness of my life. I call on
your greatness. Let your heart be softened by my misfortunes."</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_77" id="Page_77"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>This touching appeal met with the same fate as the
first. Bonaparte even had the meanness to forbid the
prisoner's wearing an officer's uniform. When he asked
for a change of clothing, the cast-off suit of a soldier and
a pair of old boots were sent him. There seemed to be
a deliberate system of heaping contempt upon him. The
daily sum allowed for his food was diminished, and the
cold winds of autumn began to howl round his dungeon.
They doubtless thought that so old a man, accustomed to
tropical warmth, and the devotion of a loving family,
would die under the combined influence of solitude, cold,
and scanty food. But his iron constitution withstood the
severe test. The next step was to deprive him of his
faithful servant, Mars Plaisir. Seeing him weep bitterly,
Toussaint said to him: "Would I could console thee under
this cruel separation. Be assured I shall never forget
thy faithful services. Carry my last farewell to my wife
and family."</p>
<p>The farewell never reached them. Mars Plaisir was
lodged in another prison, lest he should tell of the slow
murder that was going on in the Castle of Joux. Toussaint's
supply of food was gradually diminished, till he
had barely enough to keep him alive,—merely a little
meal daily, which he had to prepare for himself in an
earthen jug. The walls sparkled with frost, and the
floor was slippery with ice, except immediately around
his little fire. Thus he passed through a most miserable
winter. He was thin as a skeleton; but still he did not
die. As a last resort, the governor of the castle went
away and took the keys of the dungeon with him. He
was gone three days; and when he returned, Toussaint
was lying stiff and cold on his heap of straw. Doctors
were called in to examine him, and they certified that he<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_78" id="Page_78"></SPAN></span>
died of apoplexy. This was in April, 1803, after he
had been more than eight months in that horrid dungeon,
and when he was a little more than sixty years old. The
body was buried in the chapel under the castle. It was
given out to the world that the deceased prisoner was
a revolted slave, who had been guilty of every species
of robbery and cruelty; and that he had been thrown into
prison for plotting to deliver the island of St. Domingo
into the hands of the English.</p>
<p>When the family of Toussaint l'Ouverture were informed
of his death, they were overwhelmed with grief,
though they had no idea of the horrid circumstances connected
with it. The two oldest sons tried to escape from
France, but were seized and imprisoned. The French
government feared the consequences of their returning
to St. Domingo. The youngest son soon after died of
consumption. Madame Toussaint sank under the weight
of her great afflictions. Her health became very feeble,
and at times her mind wandered. When the power of
Bonaparte was overthrown, and a new government introduced
into France, a pension was granted for her support,
and her two sons were released from prison. She died
in their arms in 1816.</p>
<hr class="tb" />
<p>There was great consternation in St. Domingo when
it was known that Toussaint l'Ouverture had been kidnapped
and carried off. There was an attempt at mutiny
among the black soldiers; but the leaders were shot by
the French, and the spirit of insurrection was put down
for a time. No tidings could be obtained from Toussaint,
and after a while he was generally believed to be dead.
But his prediction was fulfilled. The tree of Liberty,
that had been cut down, did sprout again. Bonaparte<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_79" id="Page_79"></SPAN></span>
sent new troops to St. Domingo to supply the place of
those cut off by yellow fever. The French officers frequently
subjected black soldiers to the lash, a punishment
which had never been inflicted upon them since the days
of Slavery. An active slave-trade was carried on with
the other French colonies, where Slavery had been restored,
and people were frequently smuggled away from
St. Domingo and sold. The mulattoes found out that
people of their color were sold, as well as blacks. They
had formerly acted against their mothers' race, not because
they were worse than other men, but because they
had the same human nature that other men have. Being
free born, and many of them educated and wealthy, and
slaveholders also, they despised the blacks, who had always
been slaves; but when Slavery touched people of
their own color, they were ready to act with the negroes
against the whites. Toussaint's generals, though they
still held their old rank in the army, grew more and
more distrustful of the French. When General Christophe
accepted an invitation to dine with General Le
Clerc, he ordered his troops to be in readiness for a sudden
blow. The French officer who sat next him at table
urged him to drink a great deal of wine; but Christophe
was on his guard, and kept his wits about him. At last
he repulsed the offer of wine with great rudeness, whereupon
Le Clerc summoned his guard to be in readiness,
and began to accuse Toussaint of treachery to the
whites. "Treachery!" exclaimed the indignant Christophe.
"Have you not broken oaths and treaties, and
violated the sacred rights of hospitality? Those whose
blood flows for our liberty are rewarded with prison,
banishment, death. Friends, soldiers, heroes of our
mountains, are no longer around me. Toussaint, the<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_80" id="Page_80"></SPAN></span>
pride of our race, the terror of our enemies, whose genius
led us from Slavery to Liberty, who adorned peace with
lovely virtues, whose glory fills the world, was put in
irons, like the vilest criminal!"</p>
<p>General Le Clerc deemed it prudent to preserve outward
composure, for General Christophe had informed
him that troops were in readiness to protect him. But
notwithstanding many ominous symptoms of discontent
among the blacks and mulattoes, he blindly persevered
in carrying out the cruel policy of Bonaparte. Shiploads
of slaves were brought into St. Domingo and
openly sold. Then came a decree authorizing slaveholders
to resume their old authority over the blacks.
Bitterly did Toussaint's officers regret having trusted
to the promises of the French authorities. The consciousness
of having been deceived made the fire of
freedom burn all the more fiercely in their souls. The
blacks were everywhere ready to die rather than be
slaves again. In November, 1803, General Christophe
published a document in which he said:—</p>
<p>"The independence of St. Domingo is proclaimed.
Toward men who do us justice we will act as brothers.
But we have sworn not to listen with clemency to any
one who speaks to us of Slavery. We will be inexorable,
perhaps even cruel, toward those who come from
Europe to bring among us death and servitude. No
sacrifice is too costly, and all means are lawful, when
men find that freedom, the greatest of all blessings, is
to be wrested from them."</p>
<p>The closing scenes of the revolution were too horrible
to be described. General Rochambeau, who commanded
the French army after the death of General Le Clerc,
was a tyrannical and cruel tool of the slaveholders.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_81" id="Page_81"></SPAN></span>
Everywhere colored men were seized and executed
without forms of law. Maurepas, who had been one
of Toussaint's most distinguished generals, was seized on
suspicion of favoring insurrection. His epaulets were
nailed to his shoulders with spikes, he was suspended
from the yard-arm of a vessel, while his wife and children,
and four hundred of his black soldiers, were thrown
over to the sharks before his eyes. The trees were hung
with the corpses of negroes. Some were torn to pieces
by bloodhounds trained for the purpose; some were
burnt alive. Sixteen of Toussaint's bravest generals
were chained by the neck to the rocks of an uninhabited
island, and left there to perish. Most of these victims
were firm in the midst of their tortures, and died
with the precious word Freedom on their lips. A
mother, whose daughters were going to be executed,
said to them: "Be thankful. You will not live to be
the mothers of slaves."</p>
<p>I am happy to record that all the whites were not
destitute of feeling. Some sea-captains, who were ordered
to take negroes out to sea and drown them, contrived
to aid their escape to the mountains, or landed
them on other shores.</p>
<p>The blacks, driven to desperation, became as cruel as
their oppressors. They visited upon white men, women,
and children all the barbarities they had seen and suffered.
The wife of General Paul, brother of Toussaint,
was dragged from her peaceful home, and drowned by
French soldiers. This murder made him perfectly crazy
with revenge. Though naturally of a mild disposition,
he thenceforth had no mercy on anybody of white complexion.
His old father, Gaou-Guinou, who survived
Toussaint about a year, was filled with the same spirit,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_82" id="Page_82"></SPAN></span>
and the last words he uttered were a malediction on the
whites. The spirit of the infernal regions raged throughout
all classes, and it was all owing to the wickedness of
Slavery.</p>
<p>On the last day of November, 1803, little more than
a year after the abduction of Toussaint, the French were
driven from the island, never more to return. The colony,
which might have been a source of wealth to them, if
Toussaint had been allowed to carry out his plans, was
lost to France forever. St. Domingo became independent,
under its old name of Hayti; and General Christophe,
who was as able as Toussaint, but more ambitious,
was proclaimed emperor. A law was passed, and still remains
in force, that no white man should own a foot of
soil on the island. But white Americans and Europeans
reside there, and transact various kinds of business under
the protection of equal laws.</p>
<p>Perhaps it sometimes seemed to Toussaint, in the
loneliness of his dungeon, as if all his great sacrifices
and efforts for his oppressed race had been in vain. But
they were not in vain. God raised him up to do a great
work, which he faithfully performed; and his spirit is still
"marching on." Slavery becomes more and more odious
in the civilized world, and nation after nation abolishes it.
Fifty years after the death of Toussaint all the slaves in
the French colonies were emancipated. How his spirit
must rejoice to look on the West Indies now!</p>
<p>In 1850 the grave of Toussaint l'Ouverture was discovered
by some engineers at work on the Castle of
Joux. His skull was placed on a shelf in the dungeon
where he died, and is shown to travellers who visit the
place.</p>
<p>For a long while great injustice was done to the mem<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_83" id="Page_83"></SPAN></span>ory
of Toussaint l'Ouverture, and also to the blacks who
fought so fiercely in resistance of Slavery; for the histories
of St. Domingo were written by prejudiced French
writers, or by equally prejudiced mulattoes. But at last
the truth is made known. Candid, well-informed persons
now acknowledge that the blacks of St. Domingo sinned
cruelly because they were cruelly sinned against; and
Toussaint l'Ouverture, seen in the light of his own actions,
is acknowledged to be one of the greatest and best
men the world has ever produced. A very distinguished
English poet, named Wordsworth, has written an admirable
sonnet to his memory. The celebrated Harriet
Martineau, of England, has made him the hero of a beautiful
novel. Wendell Phillips, one of the most eloquent
speakers in the United States, has eulogized his memory
in a noble lecture, delivered in various parts of the country,
before thousands and thousands of hearers. And
James Redpath has recently published in Boston a biography
of Toussaint l'Ouverture, truthfully portraying the
pure and great soul of that martyred hero.</p>
<p>Well may the Freedmen of the United States take
pride in Toussaint l'Ouverture, as the man who made an
opening of freedom for their oppressed race, and by the
greatness of his character and achievements proved the
capabilities of Black Men.</p>
<hr class="tb" />
<p>It is better to be a lean freeman than a fat slave.—<i>A
Proverb in Hayti.</i></p>
<hr class="chap" /><p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_84" id="Page_84"></SPAN></span></p>
<h2><SPAN name="THE_ASPIRATIONS_OF_MINGO" id="THE_ASPIRATIONS_OF_MINGO"></SPAN>THE ASPIRATIONS OF MINGO.</h2>
<p>A slave in one of our Southern States, named
Mingo, was endowed with uncommon abilities. If
he had been a white man, his talents would have secured
him an honorable position; but being colored, his great
intelligence only served to make him an object of suspicion.
He was thrown into prison, to be sold. He wrote
the following lines on the walls, which were afterward
found and copied. A Southern gentleman sent them to
a friend in Boston, as a curiosity, and they were published
in the Boston Journal, many years ago. The night after
Mingo wrote them, he escaped from the slave-prison; but
he was tracked and caught by bloodhounds, who tore
him in such a shocking manner that he died. By that
dreadful process his great soul was released from his
enslaved body. His wife lived to be an aged woman,
and was said to have many of his poems in her possession.
Here are the lines he wrote in his agony while
in prison:—</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">"Good God! and must I leave them now,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">My wife, my children, in their woe?<br/></span>
<span class="i0">'Tis mockery to say I'm sold!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">But I forget these chains so cold,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Which goad my bleeding limbs; though high<br/></span>
<span class="i0">My reason mounts above the sky.<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Dear wife, they cannot sell the rose<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Of love that in my bosom glows.<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Remember, as your tears may start,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">They cannot sell the immortal part.<br/></span>
<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_85" id="Page_85"></SPAN></span>
<span class="i0">Thou Sun, which lightest bond and free,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Tell me, I pray, is liberty<br/></span>
<span class="i0">The lot of those who noblest feel,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And oftest to Jehovah kneel?<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Then I may say, but not with pride,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">I feel the rushings of the tide<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Of reason and of eloquence,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Which strive and yearn for eminence.<br/></span>
<span class="i0">I feel high manhood on me now,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">A spirit-glory on my brow;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">I feel a thrill of music roll,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Like angel-harpings, through my soul;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">While poesy, with rustling wings,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Upon my spirit rests and sings.<br/></span>
<span class="i0"><i>He</i> sweeps my heart's deep throbbing lyre,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Who touched Isaiah's lips with fire."<br/></span></div>
</div>
<p>May God forgive his oppressors.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="BURY_ME_IN_A_FREE_LAND" id="BURY_ME_IN_A_FREE_LAND"></SPAN>BURY ME IN A FREE LAND.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY FRANCES E. W. HARPER.</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Make me a grave where'er you will,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">In a lowly plain or a lofty hill;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Make it among earth's humblest graves,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">But not in a land where men are slaves.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">I ask no monument proud and high,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">To arrest the gaze of the passers by;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">All that my yearning spirit craves<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Is, Bury me not in a Land of Slaves.<br/></span>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_86" id="Page_86"></SPAN></span></p>
</div>
</div>
<h2><SPAN name="PHILLIS_WHEATLEY" id="PHILLIS_WHEATLEY"></SPAN>PHILLIS WHEATLEY.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY L. MARIA CHILD.</p>
<p>Phillis Wheatley was born in Africa, and
brought to Boston, Massachusetts, in the year
1761,—a little more than a hundred years ago. At
that time the people in Massachusetts held slaves. The
wife of Mr. John Wheatley of Boston had several slaves;
but they were getting too old to be very active, and she
wanted to purchase a young girl, whom she could train
up in such a manner as to make her a good domestic.
She went to the slave-market for that purpose, and there
she saw a little girl with no other clothing than a piece
of dirty, ragged carpeting tied round her. She looked
as if her health was feeble,—probably owing to her sufferings
in the slave-ship, and to the fact of her having
no one to care for her after she landed. Mrs. Wheatley
was a kind, religious woman; and though she considered
the sickly look of the child an objection, there was something
so gentle and modest in the expression of her dark
countenance, that her heart was drawn toward her, and
she bought her in preference to several others who looked
more robust. She took her home in her chaise, put her
in a bath, and dressed her in clean clothes. They could
not at first understand her; for she spoke an African dialect,
sprinkled with a few words of broken English; and
when she could not make herself understood, she resorted
to a variety of gestures and signs. She did not know her
own age, but, from her shedding her front teeth at that<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_87" id="Page_87"></SPAN></span>
time, she was supposed to be about seven years old. She
could not tell how long it was since the slave-traders tore
her from her parents, nor where she had been since that
time. The poor little orphan had probably gone through
so much suffering and terror, and been so unable to make
herself understood by anybody, that her mind had become
bewildered concerning the past. She soon learned to
speak English; but she could remember nothing about
Africa, except that she used to see her mother pour out
water before the rising sun. Almost all the ancient
nations of the world supposed that a Great Spirit had
his dwelling in the sun, and they worshipped that Spirit
in various forms. One of the most common modes of
worship was to pour out water, or wine, at the rising
of the sun, and to utter a brief prayer to the Spirit of
that glorious luminary. Probably this ancient custom
had been handed down, age after age, in Africa, and in
that fashion the untaught mother of little Phillis continued
to worship the god of her ancestors. The sight
of the great splendid orb, coming she knew not whence,
rising apparently out of the hills to make the whole world
glorious with light, and the devout reverence with which
her mother hailed its return every morning, might naturally
impress the child's imagination so deeply, that she
remembered it after she had forgotten everything else
about her native land.</p>
<p>A wonderful change took place in the little forlorn
stranger in the course of a year and a half. She not
only learned to speak English correctly, but she was able
to read fluently in any part of the Bible. She evidently
possessed uncommon intelligence and a great desire for
knowledge. She was often found trying to make letters
with charcoal on the walls and fences. Mrs. Wheatley's<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_88" id="Page_88"></SPAN></span>
daughter, perceiving her eagerness to learn, undertook
to teach her to read and write. She found this an easy
task, for her pupil learned with astonishing quickness.
At the same time she showed such an amiable, affectionate
disposition, that all members of the family became
much attached to her. Her gratitude to her kind, motherly
mistress was unbounded, and her greatest delight
was to do anything to please her.</p>
<p>When she was about fourteen years old, she began to
write poetry; and it was pretty good poetry, too. Owing
to these uncommon manifestations of intelligence, and
to the delicacy of her health, she was never put to hard
household work, as was intended at the time of her purchase.
She was kept constantly with Mrs. Wheatley
and her daughter, employed in light and easy services
for them. Her poetry attracted attention, and Mrs.
Wheatley's friends lent her books, which she read with
great eagerness. She soon acquired a good knowledge
of geography, history, and English poetry; of the last
she was particularly fond. After a while, they found
she was trying to learn Latin, which she so far mastered
as to be able to read it understandingly. There was no
law in Massachusetts against slaves learning to read and
write, as there have been in many of the States; and her
mistress, so far from trying to hinder her, did everything
to encourage her love of learning. She always called
her affectionately, "My Phillis," and seemed to be as
proud of her attainments as if she had been her own
daughter. She even allowed her to have a fire and light
in her own chamber in the evening, that she might study
and write down her thoughts whenever they came to her.</p>
<p>Phillis was of a very religious turn of mind, and when
she was about sixteen she joined the Orthodox Church,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_89" id="Page_89"></SPAN></span>
that worshipped in the Old-South Meeting-house in Boston.
Her character and deportment were such that she
was considered an ornament to the church. Clergymen
and other literary persons who visited at Mrs. Wheatley's
took a good deal of notice of her. Her poems were
brought forward to be read to the company, and were often
much praised. She was not unfrequently invited to
the houses of wealthy and distinguished people, who liked
to show her off as a kind of wonder. Most young girls
would have had their heads completely turned by so
much flattery and attention; but seriousness and humility
seemed to be natural to Phillis. She always retained
the same gentle, modest deportment that had won Mrs.
Wheatley's heart when she first saw her in the slave-market.
Sometimes, when she went abroad, she was invited
to sit at table with other guests; but she always
modestly declined, and requested that a plate might be
placed for her on a side-table. Being well aware of the
common prejudice against her complexion, she feared
that some one might be offended by her company at
their meals. By pursuing this course she manifested
a natural politeness, which proved her to be more truly
refined than any person could be who objected to sit
beside her on account of her color.</p>
<p>Although she was tenderly cared for, and not required
to do any fatiguing work, her constitution never recovered
from the shock it had received in early childhood.
When she was about nineteen years old, her health failed
so rapidly that physicians said it was necessary for her
to take a sea-voyage. A son of Mr. Wheatley's was going
to England on commercial business, and his mother
proposed that Phillis should go with him.</p>
<p>In England she received even more attention than had<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_90" id="Page_90"></SPAN></span>
been bestowed upon her at home. Several of the nobility
invited her to their houses; and her poems were
published in a volume, with an engraved likeness of the
author. In this picture she looks gentle and thoughtful,
and the shape of her head denotes intellect. One of the
engravings was sent to Mrs. Wheatley, who was delighted
with it. When one of her relatives called, she pointed it
out to her, and said, "Look at my Phillis! Does she
not seem as if she would speak to me?"</p>
<p>Still the young poetess was not spoiled by flattery.
One of the relatives of Mrs. Wheatley informs us, that
"not all the attention she received, nor all the honors
that were heaped upon her, had the slightest influence
upon her temper and deportment. She was still the
same single-hearted, unsophisticated being."</p>
<p>She addressed a poem to the Earl of Dartmouth, who
was very kind to her during her visit to England. Having
expressed a hope for the overthrow of tyranny, she
says:—</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">"Should you, my Lord, while you peruse my song,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Wonder from whence my love of Freedom sprung,—<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Whence flow these wishes for the common good,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">By feeling hearts alone best understood,—<br/></span>
<span class="i0">I, young in life, by seeming cruel fate,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Was snatched from Afric's fancied happy state.<br/></span>
<span class="i0">What pangs excruciating must molest,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">What sorrows labor in my parent's breast!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Steeled was that soul, and by no misery moved,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">That from a father seized his babe beloved.<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Such was my case; and can I then but pray<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Others may never feel tyrannic sway."<br/></span></div>
</div>
<p>The English friends of Phillis wished to present her
to their king, George the Third, who was soon expected
in London. But letters from America informed her that
her beloved benefactress, Mrs. Wheatley, was in declining<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_91" id="Page_91"></SPAN></span>
health, and greatly desired to see her. No honors
could divert her mind from the friend of her childhood.
She returned to Boston immediately. The good lady
died soon after; Mr. Wheatley soon followed; and the
daughter, the kind instructress of her youth, did not long
survive. The son married and settled in England. For
a short time Phillis stayed with a friend of her deceased
benefactress; then she hired a room and lived by herself.
It was a sad change for her.</p>
<p>The war of the American Revolution broke out. In
the autumn of 1776 General Washington had his head-quarters
at Cambridge, Massachusetts; and the spirit
moved Phillis to address some complimentary verses
to him. In reply, he sent her the following courteous
note:—</p>
<blockquote><p>"I thank you most sincerely for your polite notice of
me in the elegant lines you enclosed. However undeserving
I may be of such encomium, the style and manner
exhibit a striking proof of your poetical talents. In
honor of which, and as a tribute justly due to you, I
would have published the poem, had I not been apprehensive
that, while I only meant to give the world this
new instance of your genius, I might have incurred the
imputation of vanity. This, and nothing else, determined
me not to give it a place in the public prints.</p>
<p>"If you should ever come to Cambridge, or near head-quarters,
I shall be happy to see a person so favored by
the Muses,<SPAN name="FNanchor_4_4" id="FNanchor_4_4"></SPAN><SPAN href="#Footnote_4_4" class="fnanchor">[4]</SPAN> and to whom Nature had been so liberal
and beneficent in her dispensations.</p>
<p class="quotsig">
"I am, with great respect,<br/>
<br/>
"Your obedient, humble servant,<br/>
<br/>
"<span class="smcap">George Washington</span>."<br/></p>
</blockquote>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_92" id="Page_92"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>The early friends of Phillis were dead, or scattered
abroad, and she felt alone in the world. She formed an
acquaintance with a colored man by the name of Peters,
who kept a grocery shop. He was more than commonly
intelligent, spoke fluently, wrote easily, dressed well, and
was handsome in his person. He offered marriage, and
in an evil hour she accepted him. He proved to be
lazy, proud, and harsh-tempered. He neglected his business,
failed, and became very poor. Though unwilling
to do hard work himself, he wanted to make a drudge
of his wife. Her constitution was frail, she had been
unaccustomed to hardship, and she was the mother of
three little children, with no one to help her in her household
labors and cares. He had no pity on her, and instead
of trying to lighten her load, he made it heavier
by his bad temper. The little ones sickened and died,
and their gentle mother was completely broken down
by toil and sorrow. Some of the descendants of her
lamented mistress at last heard of her illness and went
to see her. They found her in a forlorn situation, suffering
for the common comforts of life. The Revolutionary
war was still raging. Everybody was mourning for sons
and husbands slain in battle. The country was very poor.
The currency was so deranged that a goose cost forty dollars,
and other articles in proportion. In such a state of
things, people were too anxious and troubled to think
about the African poetess, whom they had once delighted
to honor; or if they transiently remembered her, they
took it for granted that her husband provided for her.
And so it happened that the gifted woman who had been
patronized by wealthy Bostonians, and who had rolled
through London in the splendid carriages of the English
nobility, lay dying alone, in a cold, dirty, comfortless<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_93" id="Page_93"></SPAN></span>
room. It was a mournful reverse of fortune; but she
was patient and resigned. She made no complaint of
her unfeeling husband; but the neighbors said that when
a load of wood was sent to her, he felt himself too much
of a gentleman to saw it, though his wife was shivering
with cold. The descendants of Mrs. Wheatley did what
they could to relieve her wants, after they discovered her
extremely destitute condition; but, fortunately for her,
she soon went "where the wicked cease from troubling,
and where the weary are at rest."</p>
<p>Her husband was so generally disliked, that people
never called her Mrs. Peters. She was always called
Phillis Wheatley, the name bestowed upon her when she
first entered the service of her benefactress, and by which
she had become known as a poetess.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="A_PERTINENT_QUESTION" id="A_PERTINENT_QUESTION"></SPAN>A PERTINENT QUESTION.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY FREDERICK DOUGLASS.</p>
<p>"Is it not astonishing, that while we are ploughing, planting,
and reaping, using all kinds of mechanical tools, erecting
houses and constructing bridges, building ships, working
in metals of brass, iron, and copper, silver and gold; that
while we are reading, writing, and ciphering, acting as clerks,
merchants, and secretaries, having among us lawyers, doctors,
ministers, poets, authors, editors, orators, and teachers; that
while we are engaged in all manner of enterprises common to
other men, digging gold in California, capturing the whale in
the Pacific, breeding sheep and cattle on the hillside; living,
moving, acting, thinking, planning; living in families as husbands,
wives, and children; and, above all, confessing and
worshipping the Christian's God, and looking hopefully for
immortal life beyond the grave;—is it not astonishing, I say,
that we are called upon to prove that we are <i>men</i>?"</p>
<hr class="chap" /><p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_94" id="Page_94"></SPAN></span></p>
<h2><SPAN name="THE_WORKS_OF_PROVIDENCE" id="THE_WORKS_OF_PROVIDENCE"></SPAN>THE WORKS OF PROVIDENCE.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY PHILLIS WHEATLEY.</p>
<p class="edcomment">[Written at sixteen years of age.]</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i2">Arise, my soul! on wings enraptured rise,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">To praise the Monarch of the earth and skies,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Whose goodness and beneficence appear,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">As round its centre moves the rolling year;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Or when the morning glows with rosy charms,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Or the sun slumbers in the ocean's arms.<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Of light divine be a rich portion lent,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">To guide my soul and favor my intent.<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Celestial Muse, my arduous flight sustain,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And raise my mind to a seraphic strain!<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i2">Adored forever be the God unseen,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Who round the sun revolves this vast machine;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Though to his eye its mass a point appears:<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Adored the God that whirls surrounding spheres,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Who first ordained that mighty Sol<SPAN name="FNanchor_5_5" id="FNanchor_5_5"></SPAN><SPAN href="#Footnote_5_5" class="fnanchor">[5]</SPAN> should reign,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">The peerless monarch of th' ethereal train.<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Of miles twice forty millions is his height,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And yet his radiance dazzles mortal sight,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">So far beneath,—from him th' extended earth<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Vigor derives, and every flowery birth.<br/></span>
<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_95" id="Page_95"></SPAN></span>
<span class="i0">Vast through her orb she moves, with easy grace,</span>
<span class="i0">Around her Phœbus<SPAN name="FNanchor_6_6" id="FNanchor_6_6"></SPAN><SPAN href="#Footnote_6_6" class="fnanchor">[6]</SPAN> in unbounded space;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">True to her course, the impetuous storm derides,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Triumphant o'er the winds and surging tides.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i2">Almighty! in these wondrous works of thine,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">What power, what wisdom, and what goodness shine!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And are thy wonders, Lord, by men explored,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And yet creating glory unadored?<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i2">Creation smiles in various beauty gay,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">While day to night, and night succeeds to day.<br/></span>
<span class="i0">That wisdom which attends Jehovah's ways,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Shines most conspicuous in the solar rays.<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Without them, destitute of heat and light,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">This world would be the reign of endless night.<br/></span>
<span class="i0">In their excess, how would our race complain,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Abhorring life! how hate its lengthened chain!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">From air, or dust, what numerous ills would rise!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">What dire contagion taint the burning skies!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">What pestilential vapor, fraught with death,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Would rise, and overspread the lands beneath!<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i2">Hail, smiling Morn, that, from the orient main<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Ascending, dost adorn the heavenly plain!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">So rich, so various are thy beauteous dyes,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">That spread through all the circuit of the skies,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">That, full of thee, my soul in rapture soars,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And thy great God, the cause of all, adores!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">O'er beings infinite his love extends,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">His wisdom rules them, and his power defends.<br/></span>
<span class="i0">When tasks diurnal tire the human frame,<br/></span>
<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_96" id="Page_96"></SPAN></span>
<span class="i0">The spirits faint, and dim the vital flame,</span>
<span class="i0">Then, too, that ever-active bounty shines,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Which not infinity of space confines.<br/></span>
<span class="i0">The sable veil, that Night in silence draws,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Conceals effects, but shows th' Almighty Cause.<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Night seals in sleep the wide creation fair,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And all is peaceful, but the brow of care.<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Again gay Phoebus, as the day before,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Wakes every eye but what shall wake no more;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Again the face of Nature is renewed,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Which still appears harmonious, fair, and good.<br/></span>
<span class="i0">May grateful strains salute the smiling morn,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Before its beams the eastern hills adorn!<br/></span></div>
</div>
<h2><SPAN name="THE_DYING_CHRISTIAN" id="THE_DYING_CHRISTIAN"></SPAN>THE DYING CHRISTIAN.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY FRANCES E. W. HARPER.</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">The silver cord was loosened,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">We knew that she must die;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">We read the mournful token<br/></span>
<span class="i2">In the dimness of her eye.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Like a child oppressed with slumber,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">She calmly sank to rest,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">With her trust in her Redeemer,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And her head upon his breast.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">She faded from our vision,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Like a thing of love and light;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">But we feel she lives forever,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">A spirit pure and bright.<br/></span>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_97" id="Page_97"></SPAN></span></p>
</div>
</div>
<h2><SPAN name="KINDNESS_TO_ANIMALS" id="KINDNESS_TO_ANIMALS"></SPAN>KINDNESS TO ANIMALS.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY L. MARIA CHILD.</p>
<p>There are not many people who are conscientious
about being kind in their relations with human beings;
and therefore it is not surprising that still fewer
should be considerate about humanity to animals. But
the Father of all created beings made dumb creatures
to enjoy existence in their way, as he made human beings
to enjoy life in their way. We do wrong in his sight if
we abuse them, or keep them without comfortable food
and shelter. The fact that they cannot speak to tell
of what they suffer makes the sad expression of their
great patient eyes the more touching to any compassionate
heart. Fugitive slaves, looking out mournfully and
wearily upon a cold, unsympathizing world, have often
reminded me of overworked and abused oxen; for though
slaves were endowed by their Creator with the gift of
speech, their oppressors have made them afraid to use
it to complain of their wrongs. In fact, they have been
in a more trying situation than abused oxen, for they
have been induced by fear to use their gift of speech in
professions of contentment with their bondage. Therefore,
those who have been slaves know how to sympathize
with the dumb creatures of God; and they, more than
others, ought to have compassion on them. The great
and good Toussaint l'Ouverture was always kind to the
animals under his care, and I consider it by no means the
smallest of his merits.</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_98" id="Page_98"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>It is selfish and cruel thoughtlessness to stand laughing
and talking, or to be resting at ease, while horses or oxen
are tied where they will be tormented by flies or mosquitos.
Last summer I read of a horse that was left
fastened in a swamp, where he could not get away from
the swarm of venomous insects, which stung him to death,
while his careless, hard-hearted driver was going about
forgetful of him. It would trouble my conscience ever
afterward if I had the death of that poor helpless animal
to answer for.</p>
<p>There is a difference in the natural disposition of animals,
as there is in the dispositions of men and women;
but, generally speaking, if animals are bad-tempered and
stubborn, it is owing to their having been badly treated
when they were young. When a horse has his mouth
hurt by jerking his bridle, it irritates him, as it irritates
a man to be violently knocked about; and in both cases
such treatment produces an unwillingness to oblige the
tormentor. Lashing a horse with a whip, to compel him
to draw loads too heavy for his strength, makes him
angry and discouraged; and at last, in despair of getting
any help for his wrongs, he stands stock still when he
finds himself fastened to a heavy load, and no amount
of kicking or beating will make him stir. He has apparently
come to the conclusion that it is better to be
killed at once than to die daily. Slaves, who are under
cruel taskmasters, also sometimes sink down in utter discouragement,
and do not seem to care for being whipped
to death. The best way to cure the disheartened and
obstinate laborer is to give him just wages and kind treatment;
and the best way to deal with the discouraged and
stubborn horse is to give him light loads and humane
usage.</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_99" id="Page_99"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>It is a very bad custom to whip a horse when he is
frightened. It only frightens the poor creature all the
more. Habits of running when frightened, or of sheering
at the sight of things to which they are not accustomed,
is generally produced in horses by mismanagement
when they are colts. By gentle and rational treatment
better characters are formed, both in animals and human
beings. There was a gentleman in the neighborhood of
Boston who managed colts so wisely, that all who were
acquainted with him wanted a horse of his training. He
was very firm with the young animals; he never allowed
them to get the better of him; but he was never in a passion
with them. He cured them of bad tricks by patient
teaching and gentle words; holding them tight all the
while, till they did what he wanted them to do. When
they became docile, he rubbed their heads, and patted
their necks, and talked affectionately to them, and gave
them a handful of oats. In that way, he obtained complete
control over them. He never kicked them, or jerked
their mouths with the bridle; he never whipped them, or
allowed a whip to be used; and the result was that they
learned to love him, and were always ready to do as he
bade them.</p>
<p>I have read of a horse that was so terrified by the
sound of a drum, that if he heard it, even from a distance,
he would run furiously and smash to pieces any
carriage to which he was harnessed. In consequence
of this, he was sold very cheap, though he was a strong,
handsome animal. The man who sold him said he had
whipped and whipped him, to cure him of the trick, but
it did no good. People laughed at the man who bought
him, and said he had thrown money away upon a useless
and dangerous creature; but he replied, "I have some
experience in horses, and I think I can cure him."</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_100" id="Page_100"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>He resolved to use no violence, but to deal rationally
and humanely with the animal, as he would like to be
dealt with if he were a horse.</p>
<p>He kept him without food till he had become very
hungry, and then he placed a pan of oats before him on
the top of a drum. As soon as he began to eat, the man
beat upon the drum. The horse reared and plunged and
ran furiously round the enclosure. He was led back to
the stable without any provender. After a while, oats
were again placed before him on the top of a drum. As
soon as the drum was beaten, the horse reared and ran
away. I suppose he remembered the terrible whippings
he had had whenever he heard a drum, and so he thought
the thing that made the noise was an enemy to him. The
third time the experiment was tried, he had become excessively
hungry. He pricked up his ears and snorted
when he heard the sound of the drum; but he stood still
and looked at the oats wistfully, while the man played
a loud, lively tune. Finding the noise did him no harm,
he at last ventured to taste of the oats, and his owner continued
to play all the while he was eating. When the
breakfast was finished, he patted him on the neck and
talked gently to him. For several days his food was
given to him in the same way. He was never afraid
of the sound of a drum afterward. On the contrary, he
learned to like it, because it made him think of sweet
oats.</p>
<p>The fact is, reasonable and kind treatment will generally
produce a great and beneficial change in vicious animals
as well as in vicious men.</p>
<hr class="chap" /><p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_101" id="Page_101"></SPAN></span></p>
<h2><SPAN name="JAMES_FORTEN" id="JAMES_FORTEN"></SPAN>JAMES FORTEN.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY L. MARIA CHILD.</p>
<p>James Forten was born in 1766, nearly a hundred
years ago. His ancestors had lived in Pennsylvania
for several generations, and, so far as he could trace
them, they had never been slaves. In his boyhood the
war of the American Revolution began. The States of
this Union were then colonies of Great Britain. Being
taxed without being represented in the British Parliament,
they remonstrated against it as an act of injustice.
The king, George the Third, was a dull, obstinate man,
disposed to be despotic. The loyal, respectful petitions
of the Colonies were treated with indifference or contempt;
and at last they resolved to become independent
of England. When James Forten was about fourteen
years old he entered into the service of the Colonial
navy, in the ship Royal Louis, commanded by Captain
Decatur, father of the celebrated commodore. It was
captured by the British ship Amphion, commanded by
Sir John Beezly. Sir John's son was on board, as
midshipman. He was about the same age as James
Forten; and when they played games together on the
deck, the agility and skill of the brown lad attracted his
attention. They became much attached to each other;
and the young Englishman offered to provide for the
education of his colored companion, and to help him on
in the world, if he would go to London with him. But
James preferred to remain in the service of his native
country. The lads shed tears at parting, and Sir John's
son obtained a promise from his father that his friend<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_102" id="Page_102"></SPAN></span>
should not be enlisted in the British army. This was
a great relief to the mind of James; for his sympathies
were on the side of the American Colonies, and he knew
that colored men in his circumstances were often carried
to the West Indies and sold into Slavery. He was transferred
to the prison-ship Old Jersey, then lying near New
York. He remained there, through a raging pestilence
on board, until prisoners were exchanged.</p>
<p>After the war was over, he obtained employment in
a sail-loft in Philadelphia, where he soon established a
good character by his intelligence, honesty, and industry.
He invented an improvement in the management of sails,
for which he obtained a patent. As it came into general
use, it brought him a good deal of money. In process of
time, he became owner of the sail-loft, and also of a good
house in the city. He married a worthy woman, and
they brought up a family of eight children. But though
he had served his country faithfully in his youth, though
he had earned a hundred thousand dollars by his ingenuity
and diligence, and though his character rendered him
an ornament to the Episcopal Church, to which he belonged,
yet so strong was the mean and cruel prejudice
against his color, that his family were excluded from
schools where the most ignorant and vicious whites could
place their children. He overcame this obstacle, at great
expense, by hiring private teachers in various branches
of education.</p>
<p>By the unrivalled neatness and durability of his work,
and by the uprightness of his character, he obtained extensive
business, and for more than fifty years employed
many people in his sail-loft. Being near the water, he
had opportunities, at twelve different times, to save people
from drowning, which he sometimes did at the risk of
his own life. The Humane Society of Philadelphia presented<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_103" id="Page_103"></SPAN></span>
him with an engraving, to which was appended a
certificate of the number of people he had saved, and the
thanks of the Society for his services. He had it framed
and hung in his parlor; and when I visited him, in 1835,
he pointed it out to me, and told me he would not take
a thousand dollars for it. He likewise told me of a
vessel engaged in the slave-trade, the owners of which
applied to him for rigging. He indignantly refused; declaring
that he considered such a request an insult to any
honest or humane man. He always had the cause of
the oppressed colored people warmly at heart, and was
desirous to do everything in his power for their improvement
and elevation. He early saw that colonizing free
blacks to Africa would never abolish Slavery; but that,
on the contrary, it tended to prolong its detestable existence.
He presided at the first meeting of colored
people in Philadelphia, to remonstrate against the Colonization
Society. He was an earnest and liberal friend of
the Anti-Slavery Society; and almost the last words
he was heard to utter were expressions of love and
gratitude to William Lloyd Garrison for his exertions
in behalf of his oppressed race. He never drank any
intoxicating liquor, and was a steadfast supporter of the
Temperance Society. Being of a kindly and humane
disposition, he espoused the principles of the Peace Society.
His influence and pure example were also given
to those who were striving against licentiousness. Indeed,
he was always ready to assist in every good word
and work.</p>
<p>He died in 1842, at the age of seventy-six years. His
funeral procession was one of the largest ever seen in
Philadelphia; thousands of people, of all classes and all
complexions, having united in this tribute of respect to
his character.</p>
<hr class="chap" /><p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_104" id="Page_104"></SPAN></span></p>
<h2><SPAN name="THE_MEETING_IN_THE_SWAMP" id="THE_MEETING_IN_THE_SWAMP"></SPAN>THE MEETING IN THE SWAMP.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY L. MARIA CHILD.</p>
<p>In 1812 there was war between the United States and
Great Britain; and many people thought it likely
that a portion of the British army would land in some
part of the Southern States and proclaim freedom to the
slaves. The more intelligent portion of the slaves were
aware of this, and narrowly watched the signs of the
times.</p>
<p>Mr. Duncan, of South Carolina, was an easy sort of
master, generally thought by his neighbors to be too indulgent
to his slaves. One evening, during the year I
have mentioned, he received many requests for passes to
go to a great Methodist meeting, and in every instance complied
with the request. After a while, he rang the bell
for a glass of water, but no servant appeared. He rang
a second time, but waited in vain for the sound of coming
footsteps. Thinking over the passes he had given,
he remembered that all the house-servants had gone to
Methodist meeting. Then it occurred to him that Methodist
meetings had lately been more frequent than usual.
He was in the habit of saying that his slaves were perfectly
contented, and would not take their freedom if he
offered it to them; nevertheless the frequency of Methodist
meetings made him a little uneasy, and brought to
mind a report he had heard, that the British were somewhere
off the coast and about to land.</p>
<p>The next morning, he took a ride on horseback, and<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_105" id="Page_105"></SPAN></span>
in a careless way asked the slaves on several plantations
where was the Methodist meeting last night. Some said
it was in one place, and some in another,—a circumstance
which made him think still more about the report
that the British were going to land. He bought a black
mask for his face, and a suit of negro clothes, and waited
for another Methodist meeting. In a few days his servants
again asked for passes, and he gave them. When
the last one had gone, he put on his disguise and followed
them over field and meadow, through woods and swamps.
The number of dark figures steering toward the same
point continually increased. If any spoke to him as
they passed, he made a very short answer, in the words
and tones common among slaves. At last they arrived
at an island in the swamp, surrounded by a belt of deep
water, and hidden by forest-trees matted together by a
luxuriant entanglement of vines. A large tree had been
felled for a bridge, and over this dusky forms were
swarming as thickly as ants into a new-made nest. After
passing through a rough and difficult path, they came
out into a large level space, surrounded by majestic trees,
whose boughs interlaced, and formed a roof high overhead,
from which hung down long streamers of Spanish
moss. Under this canopy were assembled hundreds of
black men and women. Some were sitting silent and
thoughtful, some eagerly talking together, and some singing
and shouting. The blaze of pine torches threw a
strong light on some, and made others look like great
black shadows.</p>
<p>Mr. Duncan felt a little disturbed by the strange, impressive
scene, and was more than half disposed to wish
himself at home. For some time he could make nothing
out of the confused buzz of voices and chanting of hymns.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_106" id="Page_106"></SPAN></span>
But after a while a tall man mounted a stump and requested
silence. "I suppose most all of ye know," said
he, "that at our last meeting we concluded to go to the
British, if we could get a chance; but we didn't all agree
what to do about our masters. Some said we couldn't
keep our freedom without we killed the whites, but others
didn't like the thoughts of that. We've met again to-night
to talk about it. An' now, boys, if the British land
here in Caroliny, what shall we do about our masters?"</p>
<p>As he sat down, a tall, fierce-looking mulatto sprang
upon the stump, at one leap, and exclaimed: "Scourge
<i>them</i>, as they have scourged <i>us</i>. Shoot <i>them</i>, as they
have shot <i>us</i>. Who talks of mercy to our masters?"</p>
<p>"I do," said an aged black man, who rose up tottering,
as he leaned both hands on a wooden staff,—"I do; because
the blessed Jesus always talked of mercy. They
shot my bright boy Joe, an' sold my pretty little Sally;
but, thanks to the blessed Jesus! I feel it in my poor old
heart to forgive 'em. I've been member of a Methodist
church these thirty years, an' I've heard many preachers,
white and black; an' they all tell me Jesus said, Do good
to them that do evil to you, an' pray for them that spite
you. Now I say, Let us love our enemies; let us pray for
'em; an' when our masters flog us, let us sing,—</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i2">'You may beat upon my body,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">But you cannot harm my soul.<br/></span>
<span class="i0">I shall join the forty thousand by and by.'"<br/></span></div>
</div>
<p>When the tremulous chant ceased, a loud altercation
arose. Some cried out for the blood of the whites, while
others maintained that the old man's doctrine was right.
Louder and louder grew the sound of their excited voices,
and the disguised slaveholder hid himself away deeper
among the shadows. In the midst of the confusion, a<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_107" id="Page_107"></SPAN></span>
young man of graceful figure sprang on the stump, and,
throwing off a coarse cotton frock, showed his back and
shoulders deeply gashed by a whip and oozing with blood.
He made no speech, but turned round and round slowly,
while his comrades held up their torches to show his
wounds. He stopped suddenly, and said, with stern
brevity, "Blood for blood."</p>
<p>"Would you murder 'em all?" inquired a timid voice.
"Dey don't <i>all</i> cruelize us."</p>
<p>"Dar's Massa Campbell," pleaded another. "He
neber hab his boys flogged. You wouldn't murder <i>him</i>,
would you?"</p>
<p>"No, no," shouted several voices; "we wouldn't murder
<i>him</i>."</p>
<p>"I wouldn't murder <i>my</i> master," said one of Mr. Duncan's
slaves. "I don't want to work for him for nothin';
I'se done got tired o' that; but he sha'n't be killed, if I
can help it; for he's a good master."</p>
<p>"Call him a good master if ye like," said the youth
with the bleeding shoulders. "If the white men don't
cut up the backs that bear their burdens, if they don't
shoot the limbs that make 'em rich, some are fools enough
to call 'em good masters. What right have they to sleep
in soft beds, while we, who do all the work, lie on the
hard floor? Why should I go in coarse rags, to clothe
my master in broadcloth and fine linen, when he knows,
and I know, that we are sons of the same father? Ye
may get on your knees to be flogged, if ye like; but I'm
not the boy to do it." His high, bold forehead and flashing
eye indicated an intellect too active, and a spirit too
fiery, for Slavery. The listeners were spell-bound by his
superior bearing, and for a while he seemed likely to carry
the whole meeting in favor of revenge. But the aged<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_108" id="Page_108"></SPAN></span>
black, leaning on his wooden staff, made use of every
pause to repeat the words, "Jesus told us to return good
for evil"; and his gentle counsel found response in many
hearts.</p>
<p>A short man, with roguish eyes and a laughing mouth,
rose up and looked round him with an expression of
drollery that made everybody begin to feel good-natured.
After rubbing his head a little, he said: "I don't know
how to talk like Bob, 'cause I neber had no chance. But
I'se <i>thought</i> a heap. Many a time I'se axed myself how
de white man always git he foot on de black man. Sometimes
I tink one ting, and sometimes I tink anoder ting;
and dey all git jumbled up in my head, jest like seed in
de cotton. At last I finds out how de white man always
git he foot on de black man." He took from his old torn
hat a bit of crumpled newspaper, and smoothing it out,
pointed at it, while he exclaimed: "<i>Dat's</i> de way dey do
it! Dey got de <i>knowledge</i>; and dey don't let poor nigger
hab de knowledge. May be de British lan', and may
be de British no lan'. But I tell ye, boys, de white man
can't keep he foot on de black man, ef de black man git
de knowledge. I'se gwine to tell ye how I got de knowledge.
I sot my mind on larning to read; but my ole
boss he's de most begrudgfullest massa, an' I knows he
wouldn't let me larn. So when I sees leetle massa wid
he book, I ax him, 'What you call dat?' He tell me
dat's A. So I take ole newspaper, an' ax missis, 'May
I hab dis to rub de boots?' She say yes. Den, when
I find A, I looks at him till I knows him bery well. Den
I ax leetle massa, 'What you call dat?' He say dat's
B. I looks at him till I knows him bery well. Den I
find C A T, an' I ax leetle massa what dat spell; an' he
tell me <i>cat</i>. Den, after a great long time, I read de newspaper.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_109" id="Page_109"></SPAN></span>
An' dar I find out dat de British gwine to lan'.
I tells all de boys; and dey say mus' hab Methodist
meetin'. An' what you tink dis nigger did todder day?
You know Jim, Massa Gubernor's boy? Wal, I wants
mighty bad to tell Jim dat de British gwine to lan'; but
he lib ten mile off, and ole boss nebber let me go. Wal,
Massa Gubernor come to massa's, an' I bring he hoss to
de gate. I makes bow, and says, 'How Jim do, Massa
Gubernor?' He tells me Jim bery well. Den I tells
him Jim and I was leetle boy togeder, an' I wants to sen'
Jim someting. He tells me Jim hab 'nuff ob eberyting.
I says, 'O yes, Massa Gubernor, I knows you good massa,
and Jim hab eberyting he want. But Jim an' I was leetle
boy togeder, and I wants to sen' Jim some backy.'
Massa Gubernor laugh an' say, 'Bery well, Jack.' So
I gibs him de backy in de bery bit ob newspaper dat tell
de British gwine to lan'. I marks it wid brack coal, so
Jim be sure to see it. An' Massa Gubernor hisself carry
it! Massa Gubernor hisself carry it! I has to laugh
ebery time I tinks on't."</p>
<p>He clapped his hands, shuffled with his feet, and ended
by rolling heels over head, with peals of laughter. The
multitude joined loudly in his merriment, and it took
some time to restore order. There was a good deal of
speaking afterward, and some of it was violent. A large
majority were in favor of being merciful to the masters;
but all, without exception, agreed to join the British if
they landed.</p>
<p>With thankfulness to Heaven, Mr. Duncan again found
himself in the open field, alone with the stars. Their
glorious beauty seemed to him clothed in new and awful
power. Groups of shrubbery took startling forms, and
the sound of the wind among the trees was like the unsheathing
of swords. He never forgot the lesson of that<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_110" id="Page_110"></SPAN></span>
night. In his heart he could not blame his bondmen for
seeking their liberty, and he felt grateful for the merciful
disposition they had manifested toward their oppressors;
for alone that night, in the solemn presence of the stars,
his conscience told him that Slavery <i>was</i> oppression, however
mild the humanity of the master might make it. He
did not emancipate his slaves; for he had not sufficient
courage to come out against the community in which he
lived. He felt it a duty to warn his neighbors of impending
danger; but he could not bring himself to reveal the
secret of the meeting in the swamp, which he knew would
cause the death of many helpless creatures, whose only
crime was that of wishing to be free. After a painful
conflict in his mind, he contented himself with advising
the magistrates not to allow any meetings of the colored
people for religious purposes until the war was over.</p>
<p>I have called him Mr. Duncan, but I have in fact forgotten
his name. Years after he witnessed the meeting
in the swamp, he gave an account of it to a gentleman
in Boston, and I have stated the substance of it as it was
told to me.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="A_REASONABLE_REQUEST" id="A_REASONABLE_REQUEST"></SPAN>A REASONABLE REQUEST.</h2>
<p>We are natives of this country; we ask only to be
treated <i>as well</i> as foreigners. Not a few of our fathers
suffered and bled to purchase its independence; we ask
only to be treated <i>as well</i> as those who fought against it.
We have toiled to cultivate it, and to raise it to its present
prosperous condition; we ask only to share <i>equal</i>
privileges with those who come from distant lands to enjoy
the fruits of our labor.—<span class="smcap">Rev. Peter Williams</span>,
<i>colored Rector of St. Philip's Church, New York</i>, 1835.</p>
<hr class="chap" /><p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_111" id="Page_111"></SPAN></span></p>
<h2><SPAN name="THE_SLAVE_POET" id="THE_SLAVE_POET"></SPAN>THE SLAVE POET.</h2>
<p>Mr. James Horton, of Chatham County,
North Carolina, had a slave named George,
who early manifested remarkable intelligence. He labored
with a few other slaves on his master's farm, and
was always honest, faithful, and industrious. He contrived
to learn to read, and every moment that was allowed
him for his own he devoted to reading. He was
especially fond of poetry, which he read and learned by
heart, wherever he could find it. After a time, he began
to compose verses of his own. He did not know how to
write; so when he had arranged his thoughts in rhyme,
he spoke them aloud to others, who wrote them down for
him.</p>
<p>He was not contented in Slavery, as you will see by
the following verses which he wrote:—</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">"Alas! and am I born for this,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">To wear this slavish chain?<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Deprived of all created bliss,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Through hardship, toil, and pain?<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">"How long have I in bondage lain,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And languished to be free!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Alas! and must I still complain,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Deprived of liberty?<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">"O Heaven! and is there no relief<br/></span>
<span class="i2">This side the silent grave,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">To soothe the pain, to quell the grief<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And anguish of a slave?<br/></span></div>
<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_112" id="Page_112"></SPAN></span><br/>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">"Come, Liberty! thou cheerful sound,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Roll through my ravished ears;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Come, let my grief in joys be drowned,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And drive away my fears.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">"Say unto foul oppression, Cease!<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Ye tyrants, rage no more;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And let the joyful trump of peace<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Now bid the vassal soar.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">"O Liberty! thou golden prize,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">So often sought by blood,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">We crave thy sacred sun to rise,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">The gift of Nature's God.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">"Bid Slavery hide her haggard face,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And barbarism fly;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">I scorn to see the sad disgrace,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">In which enslaved I lie.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">"Dear Liberty! upon thy breast<br/></span>
<span class="i2">I languish to respire;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And, like the swan unto her nest,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">I'd to thy smiles retire."<br/></span></div>
</div>
<p>George's poems attracted attention, and several were
published in the newspaper called "The Raleigh Register."
Some of them found their way into the Boston
newspapers, and were thought remarkable productions
for a slave. His master took no interest in any of his
poems, and knew nothing about them, except what he
heard others say. Dr. Caldwell, who was then President
of the University of North Carolina, and several
other gentlemen, became interested for him, and tried to
help him to obtain his freedom. In 1829 a little volume
of his poems, called "The Hope of Liberty," was printed
in Raleigh, by Gales and Son. The pamphlet was sold
to raise money enough for George to buy himself. He
was then thirty-two years old, in the prime of his strength,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_113" id="Page_113"></SPAN></span>
both in mind and body. He was to be sent off to Liberia
as soon as he was purchased; but he had such a passion
for Liberty, that he was willing to follow her to the ends
of the earth; though he would doubtless have preferred
to have been a freeman at home, among old friends and
familiar scenes. He was greatly excited about his prospects,
and eagerly set about learning to write. When he
first heard the news that influential gentlemen were exerting
themselves in his behalf, he wrote:—</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">"'Twas like the salutation of the dove,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Borne on the zephyr through some lonesome grove,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">When spring returns, and winter's chill is past,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And vegetation smiles above the blast.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">"The silent harp, which on the osiers hung,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Again was tuned, and manumission sung;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Away by hope the clouds of fear were driven,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And music breathed my gratitude to Heaven."<br/></span></div>
</div>
<p>It would have been better for him if his hopes had
not been so highly excited. His poems did not sell for
enough to raise the sum his master demanded for him,
and his friends were not sufficiently benevolent to make
up the deficiency. In 1837, when he was forty years old,
he was still working as a slave at Chapel Hill, the seat
of the University of North Carolina. It was said at that
time that he had ceased to write poetry. I suppose the
poor fellow was discouraged. If he is still alive, he is
sixty-seven years old; and I hope it will comfort his poor,
bruised heart to know that some of his verses are preserved,
and published for the benefit of those who have
been his companions in Slavery, and who, more fortunate
than he was, have become freemen before their strength
has left them.</p>
<hr class="chap" /><p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_114" id="Page_114"></SPAN></span></p>
<h2><SPAN name="RATIE" id="RATIE"></SPAN>RATIE:<br/> <small>A TRUE STORY OF A LITTLE HUNCHBACK.</small></h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY MATTIE GRIFFITH.</p>
<p>I want to tell you a story of a poor little slave-girl
who lived and died away down South.</p>
<p>This little girl's name was Rachel, but they used to
call her Ratie. She was a hunchback and a dwarf, with
an ugly black face, coarse and irregular features, but a
low, pleasant voice, and nice manners. Nobody ever
scolded Ratie, for she never deserved it. She always
did her work—the little that was assigned her—with
a cheerful heart and willing hand. This work was
chiefly to gather up little bits of chips in baskets, or collect
shavings from the carpenters' shops, and take them
to the cabins or the great kitchen, where they were used
for kindling fires. She had a sweet, gentle spirit, and a
low, cheery laugh that charmed everybody. Even the
white folks who lived up at the great house loved her,
and somehow felt better when she was near.</p>
<p>Ratie used to go out into the fields on summer days,
or in the early spring, and pick the first flowers. Later
in the season she caught the butterflies or grasshoppers,
but she never hurt them. She would look at the bright
spangled wings of the butterflies, or the green coats of
the pretty, chirping grasshoppers, with an eye full of admiration;
and she always seemed sorry when she gave
them up. The lambs used to run to her, and eat from<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_115" id="Page_115"></SPAN></span>
her hands. If she went into the park, the deer came
to her side lovingly, and the young fawns sported and
played around her. No one harmed Ratie or expected
harm from her.</p>
<p>Poor little hunchback! Many an idle traveller has
paused in his slow wanderings to listen to her song, as
she sat on the wayside stump, knitting stockings for the
work-people, and singing old snatches of songs, and airs
that bring back to the heart glimpses of the paradise of
our lost childhood! No broad-throated robin ever poured
out a wilder, fuller gush of melody than the songs of this
untaught child!</p>
<p>Little Ratie's days were passed in the same even routine,
without thought or chance of change. Up at the
house they loved her; and her young mistresses used to
supply her with cast-off ribbons and shawls and fancy
trappings from their own wardrobes, which she prized
very much,—delighting to deck out her odd little person
with these old fineries.</p>
<p>Once, as she sat singing on an old stile, and knitting
a stocking, a rough sort of gentleman, driving by in his
neat little tilbury, stopped and listened to Ratie's song.
When he looked at the strange child he felt a little
shocked; but he called out in a loud voice, "Halloo,
Dumpey Blackie! here is a fip for your song"; and he
tossed her a small coin. "Take that, and give me
another song."</p>
<p>The child was pleased with the gift, took it up from
where it had rolled on the ground at her feet, and soon
began another of her wild little ditties. As she sang on,
she forgot the exact words, and put in some of her own,
which harmonized just as well with the air. The stranger
was so much pleased, that he gave her another fip,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_116" id="Page_116"></SPAN></span>
and called for another song, and still another. At length,
he asked the child to whom she belonged. She told him
that she belonged to her old master.</p>
<p>"And what is your old master's name?" asked the
gentleman.</p>
<p>Ratie, who had never been two miles beyond the borders
of the plantation, laughed, thinking it a fine joke that
anybody should not know the name of her "old master";
for, to her, he was the most important personage in the
world. So she only laughed and shook her head derisively
in answer.</p>
<p>"Will you not tell me his name?" again asked the
stranger.</p>
<p>But the child smiled still more incredulously; so the
gentleman deemed it best to follow her home, which he
accordingly did, and found that Colonel Williams, a rich
old planter, was the owner of this little melodious blackbird.</p>
<p>The stranger alighted and asked to see Colonel Williams.
After a little conversation he proposed to buy
Ratie from her master. Colonel Williams had never
thought of selling the little deformity. He kept her on
the place more through charity than aught else. The
extent of her musical genius was unappreciated, and even
unknown to him; but as she was a happy little creature,
much liked by all the family, and was only a trifling expense,
he had never thought of parting with her. Now,
however, when a handsome price was offered, she assumed
something like importance and interest in his eyes. He
called her into the house, and she obeyed with great alacrity,
coming in neatly dressed, with a fresh white apron,
and sundry bits of bright-colored ribbons tied round her
head and neck.</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_117" id="Page_117"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>"Give us one of your best songs, Ratie," said her
master.</p>
<p>The girl broke out in a wild, warbling strain, clear,
bird-like, and musical, filling the long room with gushes
of melody, until the lofty arches echoed and re-echoed
with the wild notes. When she had finished, the enthusiastic
stranger exclaimed, "That throat is a mint of gold!"</p>
<p>And so little hunchback Ratie sang song after song,
until she exhausted herself; when her master sent her
off to the slave-quarters, where she continued her ditties
out under the broad, soft light of the low-hanging southern
moon.</p>
<p>The gentlemen sat up late that night, talking upon different
subjects; but, before they parted, it was arranged
that the stranger should buy Ratie at the high price he
offered.</p>
<p>The next morning, long before the sun rose, little Ratie
was up, walking through the quarter. She stooped down
to look at every drop of dew that glittered and sparkled
on the green leaves and shrubs; and when the great,
round, golden sun began to creep up the eastern sky,
and set it all ablaze with red and gold and purple clouds,
glorious as the pavilion of the prophet, Ratie's little spirit
danced within her, and broke forth in hymns of music
such as the wise men long ago—eighteen hundred years
past—sang at the foot of a little manger in a stable in
Bethlehem of Jud�a.</p>
<p>The child was too young and ignorant to know the
meaning of the emotions which fluttered and set on fire
her own soul, but she was none the less happy for this
ignorance. God is very good!</p>
<p>As Ratie wandered on, singing to herself, she grew so
happy that the rush of passionate fervor half frightened<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_118" id="Page_118"></SPAN></span>
her. Tears came to her eyes, and choked the song in
her throat. She paused in her walk, and seated herself
on a little rock that lay in one corner of the quarter. As
she sat there alone, she continued to sing and weep;
wherefore she could not tell. By and by the great, rusty
bell of the quarter rang out from its hoarse, iron tongue
the morning summons for the slaves to assemble. Ragged,
tattered, unshorn and unshaven, dirty, ill and angry-looking,
the negroes—men, women, and children, in large
numbers—collected in the quarter-yard, where the overseer,
an ugly, harsh white man, with a pistol in his belt,
knife at his side, and whip in hand, stood to call the roll.
At the mention of each name, a slave came forward, saying
with a bow, "Here I am, massa."</p>
<p>Ratie, who had no particular work to do, went limping
on past the place of the roll-call, when she saw her master
and the strange gentleman coming toward her. She did
not, however, notice them. They were talking together
quite earnestly, and looking at her. Her master called
out, "Stop, Ratie; come this way."</p>
<p>She obeyed the order with pleasing readiness.</p>
<p>"Ratie," said the master, "how do you like this gentleman?"</p>
<p>The child smiled, but made no answer in words. The
master also smiled as he added: "He thinks that you
sing very prettily, and he has bought you. He will be
very kind and good to you; and as soon as you have had
breakfast, you must get your things ready to go off with
him. Here is a present for you"; and he tossed her a
bright, shining, silver coin.</p>
<p>The child seized the money, but did not seem to comprehend
her master's words. To be sold to her implied some
sort of disgrace or hardship, which she did not think she<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_119" id="Page_119"></SPAN></span>
deserved; besides, she had always lived on the "old plantation."
She knew no other home; she did not want
to leave "the people" of the quarter; nor did she feel
happy in going away from the "white folks," particularly
the "young mistresses," who had always been so kind to
her. She had also some vague yearning of heart to be
close to her mammy's grave, rough as it was; and near
also to Grandpap's cabin, where she roasted apples and
potatoes on winter nights.</p>
<p>She looked around upon the familiar quarter, the well-known
people, the row of cabins; and strained her gaze
far away to the rolling fields in the distance, where the
negroes, like a swarm of crows, were busy at their morning's
work; and as she gazed, the whole landscape flushed
with the bloom and beauty of the risen sun. Then the
wild, pealing horn called the "sons of toil" from their
morning hour's work to their frugal breakfast.</p>
<p>Ratie's little heart began to beat in its narrow limits
as the word "sold" wrote itself there, and broke through
her comprehension with all its horrors. She started
quickly after her master, and, with the freedom of
a petted slave, caught hold of the skirt of his coat.
Colonel Williams turned suddenly round; and there,
crouching on the earth at his feet, was the hunchback
child. She held up the money which he had given her,
and, in a sweet, tremulous voice, asked: "Massa, why has
you sold me? I has not behaved bad, as de boys did
dat you sold last year. I doesn't steal nor tell lies. Is
it bekase I'se lazy? I do all de work dey gives me to do.
I'll do more. I'll go into de fields. I'll plant and pick
de cotton. Please don't sell me. I doesn't want to leave
de ole place. Mammy is buried here; so I wants to be
when I dies. I wants allers to live here."</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_120" id="Page_120"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>The stranger and Colonel Williams were much moved.
They did not venture to speak to the child, but tried to
get away from the sound of her plaintive cries.</p>
<p>When the negroes drew around their morning meal,
and learned that Ratie was sold, they were unhappy,
and refused to eat anything. They looked sorrowfully
at one another, and turned away from their untasted food.
"Poor Ratie!" exclaimed the old negroes, as they shook
their heads in mournful discontent, "we shall not hear
any more her sweet songs in de evenin' time."</p>
<p>The young mistresses came to Ratie with kind gifts
and kinder words. They told her, with tears in their
eyes, how sorry they were to part with her, how good
they knew she had been, and how much they wished
their papa would allow her to stay. Words and acts
like these softened the blow to the unfortunate child, and
strengthened her for the coming trial. She looked up
smilingly through her tears, as she said to her young
mistresses: "Please not to cry for me. God is good,
and de preacher says he is everywhar; so I shall not
be fur from de ole plantation."</p>
<p>When she was starting away, each of the negroes
brought her some little gift, such as cotton handkerchiefs,
old ribbon-ends, bright-colored glass beads, or
autumn berries, dried and strung on threads for neck
ornaments. Each of these humble little tokens possessed
an individual interest which touched some spring in Ratie's
little heart. When the hour of separation came, she
had nerved herself to the highest courage of which she
was capable. She took leave of each of the slaves, all
of them calling down the blessings of God upon her life.
An old, lame negro man, whom the slaves addressed as
Grandpap, hobbled from his cabin, on a broken crutch,
to utter his farewell.</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_121" id="Page_121"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>"Good by, Ratie," he began, and his voice choked
with emotion; "good by, little Ratie, and may de good
Lord be wid you. Him dat keres fur de poor, de lowly,
and de despised, up yonder, way fur and high up dere,
is a God dat loves all of his chillens alike. He doesn't
kere fur de color ob de skin or de quality ob de hair. In
his sight, wool is jist as good as de fair, straight hair.
He loves de heart, and looks straight and deep into dat,
and keres fur nothin' else. Never you be afeard, Ratie,
Him'll take kere ob you, an' all sich as you, bekase He
loves dem dat He smites and afflicts. Now, He didn't
break your poor little back for nothin'. Him has Him's
eye upon you. You is a lamb ob de fold, dat de great
Shepherd will go fur and long to look arter. Him holds
you in the holler ob Him's hand, an' He'll keep you dar.
Mind what I tell you. Good by, Ratie. God bless you.
Allers trust Him. 'Member my last words; dat is, Allers
trust Him. Look to Him, and He'll never forget you."</p>
<p>As he uttered these words, in a slow, oracular manner,
he brushed a tear from his eye with the back of his old,
hard hand, and looking tenderly toward the child, his lips
moved slowly, and the words seemed to melt unheard in
the thin, morning air. He turned from her and hobbled
off in the direction of his cabin.</p>
<p>The other slaves were more passionately demonstrative
in their farewells; but little Ratie bore up with a
beautiful and proud composure.</p>
<hr class="tb" />
<p>The new owner proved very kind to the gentle little
creature; but her heart had received a blow from which
it could not recover.</p>
<p>The master took her to New Orleans, intending to have
her taught music, that she might make money for him;<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_122" id="Page_122"></SPAN></span>
but the poor child pined for "de ole plantation" and
"de ole folks at home,"—the kind people—"my people,"
as she fondly called them—with whom she had
been brought up.</p>
<p>In the great city of New Orleans she was literally
lost. She missed the free country air, the green trees,
the sweet singing-birds, the fields blooming with early
flowers, the meadows and the running brooks. It was
easy to see that the little hunchback was not happy. She
grew thinner and thinner, and her voice lost its flexible
sweetness, its clear and liquid roundness of tone. At
last she fell away to a mere skeleton; then sharp, burning
fever set in, and little Ratie was taken down to her bed.
Day and night, in the delirium of fever, she raved for
"de ole plantation" and her own people.</p>
<p>The new master promised, when she got better, to take
her back to her old home,—at least for a little while.
But, alas! she never grew any better. She faded slowly
away, until one evening, just at sundown, in the gay city
of New Orleans, little Ratie breathed her last.</p>
<p>Just before she died, she lifted her head from the pillow,
and, resting on her hand, she pointed eastward, saying:
"Over dar is de ole plantation. Don't you see?
How pretty and nice it looks! Dar is all de peoples
at work. How busy dey is! But I'se not gwine dar.
I doesn't want to, any more. Dere up dar is God's plantation,
and it is betterer far. Dere is no slaves dar, but
all is free and happy,—loving friends; and it is dar dat
I wants to go; and I hopes dat all de plantation folks
will come to me."</p>
<p>And so little Ratie died.</p>
<p class="cit">
<i>From the New York Independent.</i><br/></p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_123" id="Page_123"></SPAN></span></p>
<h2><SPAN name="THE_KINGDOM_OF_CHRIST" id="THE_KINGDOM_OF_CHRIST"></SPAN>THE KINGDOM OF CHRIST.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY JAMES MONTGOMERY.</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Hail to the Lord's anointed!<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Great David's greater Son!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Hail, in the time appointed,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">His reign on earth begun!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">He comes to break oppression,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">To set the captive free,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">To take away transgression,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And rule in equity.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">He comes, with succor speedy,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">To those who suffer wrong;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">To help the poor and needy,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And bid the weak be strong;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">To give them songs for sighing,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Their darkness turned to light,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Whose souls, condemned and dying,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Were precious in his sight.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">To him shall prayer unceasing,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And daily vows ascend;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">His kingdom still increasing,—<br/></span>
<span class="i2">A kingdom without end.<br/></span>
<span class="i0">The tide of time shall never<br/></span>
<span class="i2">His covenant remove;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">His name shall stand forever,—<br/></span>
<span class="i2">That name to us is Love.<br/></span>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_124" id="Page_124"></SPAN></span></p>
</div>
</div>
<h2><SPAN name="THE_BEGINNING_AND_PROGRESS_OF_EMANCIPATION" id="THE_BEGINNING_AND_PROGRESS_OF_EMANCIPATION"></SPAN>THE BEGINNING AND PROGRESS OF EMANCIPATION IN THE BRITISH WEST INDIES.</h2>
<p>Nothing has ever been done in this world more
wicked and cruel than the slave-trade on the
coast of Africa. But the temptation to carry it on was
very great; for hundreds of men and women could be
bought for a cask of poor rum or a peck of cheap beads,
and could be sold in the markets of America or the West
Indies for thousands of dollars. A hundred years ago
men were not at all ashamed of growing rich in this bad
way. They were respected in society as much as other
men. They were often members of churches and professed
to be very pious. Perhaps they deceived themselves,
as well as others, and really thought they were
pious, because they observed all the ritual forms of religion.
But, above all their prayers, God heard the
groans and the cries of the poor tortured Africans. He
put it into the heart of a young Englishman, named
Thomas Clarkson, to inquire into the wicked business,
that was going on under the sanction of the government,
and unreproved by the Church. In the course of his
investigations, this young man discovered that the most
shocking cruelties were habitually practised. He found
that poor creatures stolen from their homes were packed
close, like bales of goods, in the dark holds of ships,
where they were half choked by bad odors from accumulated
filth, and where they could hardly breathe for
want of air. The food allotted them was merely enough
to keep them alive. Many died of grief and despair,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_125" id="Page_125"></SPAN></span>
and still more of burning fevers and other diseases. Living
and dead often remained huddled together for hours,
and when the corpses were removed they were thrown
out to the sharks. But the sea-captains engaged in this
horrid traffic were selfish as well as cruel. They did not
like to have their victims die, because every one they
lost on the passage diminished the dollars they expected
to get by selling them. So at times they brought the
poor half-dead wretches on deck and drove them round
with a whip for exercise, and insulted their misery by
compelling them to dance, and sing the songs they had
sung in their native land.</p>
<p>Thomas Clarkson called public attention to the subject
by publishing these things in a pamphlet. More than
thirty years before, the humane sect called Quakers had
forbidden any of its members to be connected with the
slave-trade. But though the abominable traffic had
been carried on more than two hundred and fifty years
by various nations calling themselves Christian, there
had been no attempt to excite general attention to the
subject till Clarkson published his pamphlet in 1786,
seventy-nine years ago. He became so much interested
in the question that he gave up all other pursuits in life,
and wrote, and lectured, and talked about it incessantly.
The assembled representatives of the people which we
call a Congress, is called a Parliament in Great Britain.<SPAN name="FNanchor_7_7" id="FNanchor_7_7"></SPAN><SPAN href="#Footnote_7_7" class="fnanchor">[7]</SPAN>
He tried to bring the subject before that body, and succeeded
in gaining the attention of some members, among
whom the most conspicuous was the benevolent William
Wilberforce. He soon joined Mr. Clarkson in the formation
of a Society for the Abolition of the Slave-trade.
<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_126" id="Page_126"></SPAN></span>This of course gave great offence to the sea-captains and
merchants engaged in the profitable traffic. Clarkson
met with all manner of insult and abuse, and his life was
sometimes in danger. The British government did as
governments are apt to do,—it sided with the rich and
powerful as long as it was politic to do so. But, though
many of the aristocracy were haughty and selfish, the
generality of the common people were ready to sympathize
with the poor and the oppressed. When they
became aware of the outrages committed in the slave-trade,
they determined that a stop should be put to it.
They wrote, and talked, and petitioned Parliament, till
the government was compelled to pay some attention to
their demands. When the friends of the infernal traffic
found that a resolution to abolish it was likely to be
passed, they contrived to get the word "gradual" inserted
into the resolution, and thus defeated the will of the people;
for the gradual abolition of crime is no abolition at
all. It was as absurd as it would have been for them to
say they would abolish murder gradually. But though
the law was insufficient to accomplish the desired purpose,
public opinion against the trade exerted an increasing
influence. The friends of those who were engaged
in it began to apologize for it as a necessary branch of
trade, and pleaded that laborers could not be supplied in
the hot climate of the West Indies in any other way.
They were even shameless enough to defend it and praise
it as a benevolent scheme to bring savages away from
heathen Africa and make good Christians of them. Mr.
Boswell, a well-known English writer of that period,
went so far as to pronounce it "a trade which God had
sanctioned"; and he declared that "to abolish it would
be to shut the gates of mercy on mankind." Such pretences<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_127" id="Page_127"></SPAN></span>
deceived some. But the English people have a
great deal of good common sense; and it was not easy
to convince them that stealing men, women, and children
from their homes, torturing them on the ocean, and selling
them in strange lands, to be whipped to incessant toil
without wages, was a pious missionary enterprise.</p>
<p>Clarkson, Wilberforce, and others continued their unremitting
labors to suppress the unrighteous traffic; the
kindly sect of Quakers everywhere assisted them; and
benevolent people in other sects became more and more
convinced that it was their duty to do the same. All
manner of obstacles were put in the way of the desired
reformation; but at last, after twenty-two years of violent
agitation, the slave-trade was entirely abolished by Great
Britain, at the commencement of the year 1808. Sixteen
years later, it was decreed by law that any British
subject caught in the traffic should be punished as a
pirate.</p>
<p>The king, George the Third, was opposed to the abolition,
and so were all the royal family, except the Duke
of Gloucester. The nobility and wealthy people, with
a few honorable exceptions, took the same side. The
measure was carried by the good sense and good feeling
of the common people of Great Britain.</p>
<p>There were no slaves in Great Britain. It had been
decided by law that any slave who landed in that country
became free the moment he touched the shore. But
many of the West India islands, lying between North
and South America, were under the British government,
and the laborers there were held in Slavery. The English
people knew very little what was going on in those
distant colonies. When West India planters visited their
relatives and friends in Great Britain, they made out<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_128" id="Page_128"></SPAN></span>
a very fair story for themselves. They said none but
negroes could work in such a hot climate, that sugar
must be made, and negroes would not work unless they
were slaves. They represented themselves as very kind
masters, and described their bondmen as a very contented
and merry class of laborers. These planters were generally
dashing men, who spent freely the money they did
not earn; and their fine manners and smooth talk gave
the impression that they must be <i>gentle</i> men.</p>
<p>People were slow to believe the accounts of cruelties
practised in the West Indies by these polished gentlemen.
But more and more facts were brought to light to
prove that there was little to choose between the slave-trade
and the system of Slavery. When the honest
masses of the British people became convinced that the
slaves in the West Indies were entirely subject to the
will of their masters, however licentious that will might
be, and that they were kept in such brutal ignorance they
could not read the Bible, they said at once that such a
system ought to be abolished. They sent missionaries to
the West Indies to teach the negroes. The planters considered
this an impertinent interference with their affairs.
They said if slaves were instructed they would rise in
rebellion against their masters. The English people replied
that it must be a very bad system which made it
dangerous for human beings to read the Bible. The
more closely they inquired into the subject, the more their
indignation was roused. Brown faces and yellow faces
among the slaves told a shameful story of licentious masters,
while the chains and whips and other instruments
of torture found on every plantation proved that severe
treatment was universal. Again the honest masses of
the English people rose up in their moral majesty and<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_129" id="Page_129"></SPAN></span>
said that wrong should be righted. The government
was unfavorable to the abolition of Slavery, and the aristocracy,
with a few honorable exceptions, sympathized
with the slaveholders. The West-Indian planters were
boiling over with rage. They pulled down the chapels
where the negroes met together to hear the words of
Jesus; they mobbed the missionaries, they thrust them
into dungeons, and two or three of them were killed.
Some of the planters thought Slavery was a bad system,
but they had to be very cautious in expressing such an
opinion; for if they were even suspected of favoring
abolition, their neighbors were sure to make them suffer
for it in some way. Even women seemed to be filled
with the spirit of Furies, whenever the subject of Slavery
was mentioned. One of them said, if she could get hold
of Mr. Wilberforce she would tear his heart out. Everywhere
one heard mournful predictions of the ruin and
desolation that would follow emancipation. They insisted
that negroes would not work unless they were slaves, and
of course no crops could be raised; and what was still
more to be dreaded, they would murder all the whites
and set fire to the towns. Sometimes they would present
the subject from a benevolent point of view, and
urge that it would be the greatest unkindness to the negroes
to give them freedom; for when they had no kind
masters to take care of them they would certainly starve.</p>
<p>The slaves of course found out that something in their
favor was going on in England. They watched eagerly
for the arrival of vessels; they took notice of everything
that was said; if they could get hold of a scrap of newspaper
they hid it away, and those who could read would
read it privately to the others. If their masters were
unusually cross, or swore more than common, they would<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_130" id="Page_130"></SPAN></span>
wink at each other and say, "There's good news for us
from England."</p>
<p>The masters, on their part, watched the slaves closely.
If they were more silent than common, or if they appeared
to be in better spirits than common, they suspected
them of plotting insurrections. But the negroes
did more wisely than that. They believed that good
people in England were working for them, and they tried
to be patient till they were emancipated by law. There
was but one exception to this. The planters in Jamaica
were more bitter and furious than in the other islands.
They formed societies to uphold Slavery, and made flaming
speeches against the people and Parliament of Great
Britain for "setting the slaves loose upon them," as they
called it. They did not reflect that their colored servants,
as they passed in and out, heard this violent language
and had sense enough to draw conclusions from it.
But they did draw from it a conclusion very dangerous
to their masters. They had heard talk of emancipation
for several years, and it seemed to them that the promised
freedom was a long time coming. In 1832, the
speeches of the planters were so furious against the
doings in Parliament, that the slaves received the idea
that the British government had already passed laws for
their freedom, and that their masters were cheating them
out of the legal rights that had been granted them. It
was a sad mistake for the poor fellows, and brought a
great deal of suffering upon themselves and others.
They rose in insurrection, and it is said destroyed property
to the amount of six millions of dollars. But instead
of being protected by the British government, as
they had expected, soldiers were sent over to put down
the insurrection, and many of the negroes were shot and
hung.</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_131" id="Page_131"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>Meanwhile their friends in England were working for
them zealously. They published pamphlets and papers
and made speeches, and urgently petitioned Parliament
to "let the people go." One petition alone was signed
by eight hundred thousand women. One of the members,
pointing to the enormous roll, said: "There is no use in
trying longer to resist the will of the people. When all
the women in Great Britain are knocking at the doors
of Parliament, something must be done."</p>
<p>The government and the aristocracy were very reluctant
to comply with the demand of the people. But at
last, after eleven years of more violent struggle than it
had taken to suppress the African slave-trade, Slavery
itself was abolished in the British West Indies forever.
The decree was to go into effect on the 1st day of August,
1834. Up to the very last day, the planters persisted
in saying that the measure would ruin the islands.
They said the emancipated slaves would do no work,
but would go round in large gangs, robbing, stealing,
murdering the whites, burning the houses, and destroying
the fields of sugar-cane. If the negroes had been revengeful,
they might have done a great deal of mischief; for
there were five times as many colored people in the islands
as there were whites. But they were so thankful to get
their freedom at last, that there was no room in their
hearts for bad feelings. The tears were in their eyes
as they told each other the good news, and said, "Bress
de Lord and de good English people."</p>
<p>But many of the masters really believed their own
alarming prophesies. When they found that emancipation
could not be prevented, numbers left the islands.
Some of those who remained did not dare to undress
and go to bed on the night of the 31st of July; and those<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_132" id="Page_132"></SPAN></span>
who tried to sleep were generally restless and easily
startled.</p>
<p>But while masters and mistresses were dreading to
hear screams and alarms of fire, their emancipated slaves
were flocking to the churches to offer up prayers and
hymns of thanksgiving.</p>
<p>In the island of Antigua there were thirty thousand
slaves when the midnight clock began to strive twelve,
on the 31st of July, 1834; and when it had done striking
they were all free men and free women. It was a
glorious moment, never to be forgotten by them during
the remainder of their lives. The Wesleyan Methodists
kept watch-night in all their chapels. One of the
missionaries who exhorted the emancipated people and
prayed with them thus described the solemn scene:—</p>
<p>"The spacious house was filled with the candidates for
liberty. All was animation and eagerness. A mighty
chorus of voices swelled the song of expectation and joy;
and as they united in prayer, the voice of the leader was
drowned in the universal acclamations of thanksgiving
and praise and blessing and honor and glory to God,
who had come down for their deliverance. In such exercises
the evening was spent, until the hour of twelve
approached. The missionary then proposed that when
the cathedral clock should begin to strike, the whole
congregation should fall on their knees, and receive the
boon of freedom in silence. Accordingly, as the loud
bell tolled its first note, the crowded assembly prostrated
themselves. All was silence, save the quivering, half-stifled
breath of the struggling spirit. Slowly the tones
of the clock fell upon the waiting multitude. Peal on
peal, peal on peal, rolled over the prostrate throng,
like angels' voices, thrilling their weary heartstrings.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_133" id="Page_133"></SPAN></span>
Scarcely had the <i>last</i> tone sounded, when lightning
flashed vividly, and a loud peal of thunder rolled
through the sky. It was God's pillar of fire. His
trump of jubilee. It was followed by a moment of profound
silence. Then came the outburst. They shouted
'Glory! Hallelujah!' They clapped their hands, they
leaped up, they fell down, they clasped each other in
their free arms, they cried, they laughed, they went to
and fro, throwing upward their unfettered hands. High
above all, a mighty sound ever and anon swelled up. It
was the utterance of gratitude to God.</p>
<p>"After this gush of excitement had spent itself, the
congregation became calm, and religious exercises were
resumed. The remainder of the night was spent in singing
and prayer, in reading the Bible, and in addresses
from the missionaries, explaining the nature of the freedom
just received, and exhorting the people to be industrious,
steady, and obedient to the laws, and to show themselves
in all things worthy of the high boon God had conferred
upon them.</p>
<p>"The 1st of August came on Friday; and a release
from all work was proclaimed until the next Monday.
The great mass of the negroes spent the day chiefly in
the churches and chapels. The clergy and missionaries
throughout the island actively seized the opportunity to
enlighten the people on all the duties and responsibilities
of their new relation. The day was like a Sabbath. A
Sabbath, indeed, when 'the wicked ceased from troubling
and the weary were at rest.'</p>
<p>"The most kindly of the planters went to the chapels
where their own people were assembled, and shook hands
with them, and exchanged hearty good wishes.</p>
<p>"At Grace Hill, a Moravian missionary station, the<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_134" id="Page_134"></SPAN></span>
emancipated negroes begged to have a sunrise meeting
on the 1st of August, as they had been accustomed to
have at Easter; and as it was the Easter morning of their
freedom, the request was granted. The people all dressed
in white, and walked arm in arm to the chapel. There a
hymn of thanksgiving was sung by the whole congregation
kneeling. The singing was frequently interrupted by the
tears and sobs of the melted people, until finally they
were overwhelmed by a tumult of emotion.</p>
<p>"There was not a single dance by night or day; not
even so much as a fiddle played. There were no drunken
carousals, no riotous assemblies. The emancipated were
as far from dissipation and debauchery as they were from
violence and carnage. Gratitude was the absorbing emotion.
From the hill-tops and the valleys the cry of a
disenthralled people went upward, like the sound of many
waters: 'Glory to God! Glory to God!'"</p>
<p>Mr. Bleby, one of the Methodist missionaries in Jamaica,
thus describes the same night in that island:—</p>
<p>"The church where the emancipated people assembled,
at ten o'clock at night, was very large; but the aisles, the
gallery stairs, the communion-place, the pulpit stairs, were
all crowded; and there were thousands of people round
the building, at every open door and window, looking in.
We thought it right and proper that our Christian people
should receive their freedom as a boon from God, in
the house of prayer; and we gathered them together in
the church for a midnight service. Our mouths had
been closed about Slavery up to that time. We could
not quote a passage that had reference even to <i>spiritual</i>
emancipation, without endangering our lives. The
planters had a law of 'constructive treason,' that doomed
any man to death who made use of language tending to<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_135" id="Page_135"></SPAN></span>
excite a desire for liberty among the slaves; and they
found treason in the Bible and sedition in the hymns of
Watts and Wesley, and we had to be very careful how
we used them. You may imagine with what feelings I
saw myself emancipated from this thraldom, and free to
proclaim 'liberty to the captive, and the opening of prison
doors to them that were bound.' I took for my text,
'Proclaim liberty throughout all the land, unto all the
inhabitants thereof. It shall be a jubilee unto you.'</p>
<p>"A few minutes before midnight, I requested all the
people to kneel down in silent prayer to God, as befitting
the solemnity of the hour. I looked down upon them as
they knelt. The silence was broken only by sobs of
emotion, which it was impossible to repress. The clock
began to strike. It was the knell of Slavery in all the
British possessions! It proclaimed liberty to eight hundred
thousand human beings! When I told them they
might rise, what an outburst of joy there was among that
mass of people! The clock had ceased to strike, and
they were slaves no longer! Mothers were hugging
their babes to their bosoms, old white-headed men embracing
their children and husbands clasping their wives
in their arms. By and by all was still again, and I gave
out a hymn. You may imagine the feelings with which
these people, just emerging into freedom, shouted</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">'Send the glad tidings o'er the sea!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">His chains are broke, the slave is free!'"<br/></span></div>
</div>
<p>But though the dreaded 1st of August passed away
so peacefully and pleasantly, the planters could not get
rid of the idea that their laborers would not work after
they were free. Mr. Daniell, who managed several
estates in Antigua, talking of the subject, two years after<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_136" id="Page_136"></SPAN></span>ward,
with an American gentleman from Kentucky, said:
"I expected some irregularities would follow such a prodigious
change in the condition of the negroes. I supposed
there would be some relaxation from labor during
the week that followed emancipation; but on Monday
morning, I found all my hands in the field, not one missing.
The same day I received a message from another
estate, of which I was proprietor, that the negroes, to a
man, had refused to go into the field. I immediately
rode to the estate, and found the laborers, with hoes in
their hands, doing nothing. Accosting them in a friendly
manner, I inquired, 'What is the meaning of this? How
is it that you are not at work this morning?' They
immediately replied, 'It's not because we don't want to
work, massa; but we wanted to see you, first and foremost,
to know what the <i>bargain</i> would be.' As soon as
that matter was settled, the whole body of negroes turned
out cheerfully." Another manager declared that the
largest gang he had ever seen in the field, on his property,
turned out the week after emancipation. And
such in fact was the universal testimony of the managers
throughout Antigua.</p>
<p>In the days of Slavery, it had always been customary
to order out the militia during the Christmas holidays,
when the negroes were in the habit of congregating in
large numbers, to enjoy the festivities of the season. But
the December after emancipation, the Governor issued
a proclamation, that, "<i>in consequence of the abolition of
Slavery</i>," there was no further need of taking that precaution.
And it is a fact that there have been no soldiers
out at Christmas from that day to this.</p>
<p>Unfortunately the British government had been so far
influenced by the representations of the planters, that the<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_137" id="Page_137"></SPAN></span>
plan of emancipation they adopted was a gradual one.
All children under six years old were unconditionally
free, the magistrates alone had power to punish, and no
human being could be sold. But the slaves, under the
new name of apprentices, were obliged to work for their
masters six years longer without wages, except one day
and a half in the week, which the law decreed should be
their own. The number of hours they were to work
each day was also stipulated by law. This was certainly
a great improvement in their condition; but it was not
all they had expected. They were peaceable, and worked
more cheerfully than they had done while they were
slaves; for now a definite date was fixed when they
should own all their time, and they knew that every
week brought them nearer to it. Still they felt that
entire justice had not been done to them. Sometimes
white men asked them if they would work when they
were entirely free. They answered, "In Slavery time
we work; now we work better; den how you tink we
work when we <i>free</i>, when we get <i>paid</i> for work!" Sometimes
people said to them, "I suppose you expect to do
just as you please when you are your own masters?"
They replied: "We 'spect to 'bey de law. In oder
countries where dey is all free dey hab de law. We
couldn't get along widout de law. In Slavery time,
massa would sometimes slash we when we do as well as
we could; but de law don't do harm to anybody dat
behaves himself. 'Prenticeship is bad enough; but we
know de law make it so, and for peace' sake we will be
satisfy. But we murmur in we minds."</p>
<p>In the island of Antigua, planters rejected the plan of
apprenticeship. They said, "If the negroes <i>must</i> be free,
let them be free at once, without any more fuss and<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_138" id="Page_138"></SPAN></span>
trouble." The result proved that they judged wisely for
their own interest, as well as for the comfort and encouragement
of their laborers. When the negroes found
that they were paid for every day's work, they put their
whole hearts into it. So zealous were they to earn
wages, that they sometimes worked by moonlight, or by
the light of fires kindled among the dry cane-stalks. In
all respects, the change from the old order of things to
the new went on more smoothly in Antigua than it did
anywhere else.</p>
<p>In the islands where apprenticeship was tried, the
irritability of the masters made it work worse than it
would otherwise have done. All that most of them
seemed to care for was to get as much work out of their
servants as they could, during the six years that they
were to work without wages, and it vexed them that they
could not use the lash whenever they pleased. They
took away various little privileges which they had been
accustomed to grant; while during four days and a half
of the week the apprentices received no wages to compensate
them for the loss of those privileges. Being
deprived of the power to sell the children, they refused
to supply them with any food. In fact, they contrived
every way to make the colored people think they had
better have remained slaves. But if they called out,
"Work faster, you black rascal, or I'll flog you!" the
apprentices would sometimes lose patience, and answer,
"You can't flog we now." That would make the master
very angry, and he would send the apprentice to a magistrate
to be punished for impudence. The magistrates
were the associates of the planters; they ate their good
dinners, and rode about in their carriages. Consequently,
they were more inclined to believe them than they were<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_139" id="Page_139"></SPAN></span>
to believe their servants. The laborers became so well
aware of this, that they were accustomed to say to each
other, "It's of no use for us to apply to the magistrates.
They are so poisoned by massa's turtle-soup." It has
been computed by missionaries that, in the course of two
years, sixty thousand apprentices received, among them
all, two hundred and fifty thousand lashes, besides fifty
thousand other legalized punishments, such as the tread-mill
and the chain-gang.</p>
<p>The planters were full of complaints to travellers who
visited the West Indies. If they were asked, "Why
don't you emancipate your laborers entirely, and give
them wages, as they do in Antigua,—they have no such
troubles there?" the prejudiced men would shake their
heads and answer: "Negroes will not work without being
flogged. We must get what we can out of them before
1840; for when they are their own masters they will
rob, murder, or starve, rather than labor."</p>
<p>Planters who manifested a more kind and considerate
disposition had pleasanter relations with their servants,
and they never found any difficulty in procuring as much
labor as they wanted. Some made it easy for their
apprentices to buy the remainder of their time; and it
was soon observed that those who owned all their time
worked faster and better than those who were without
that stimulus. The idea gained ground that unconditional
emancipation would be better both for masters and
servants. The Marquis of Sligo, the humane Governor
of Jamaica, set a good example by emancipating all his
apprentices. People in England began to petition Parliament
to abolish the apprenticeship, on the ground that
it proved unsatisfactory and troublesome to all parties.
The result was that all the apprentices in the British<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_140" id="Page_140"></SPAN></span>
West Indies were made entirely free on the 1st of August,
1838. Mr. Phillippo, a Baptist missionary in Jamaica,
thus describes the observance of the day in that
island: "On the preceding evening, the missionary stations
throughout the island were crowded with people,
filling all the places of worship. They remained at their
devotions till the day of liberty dawned, when they
saluted it with joyous acclamations. Then they dispersed
through the towns and villages, singing 'God save
the queen,' and rending the air with their shouts,—'Freedom's
come!' 'We're free! we're free!' 'Our
wives and children are free!' During the day, the
places of worship were crowded to suffocation. The
scenes presented exceeded all description. Joyous excitement
pervaded the whole island. At Spanish Town,
the Governor, Sir Lionel Smith, addressed the emancipated
people, who formed a procession of seven thousand,
and escorted the children of the schools, about two thousand
in number, to the Government House. They bore
banners and flags with various inscriptions, of which the
following are samples: 'Education, Religion, and Social
Order'; 'August First, 1838,—the Day of our Freedom';
'Truth and Justice have at last prevailed.' The
children sang before the Government House, and his
Excellency made a speech characterized by simplicity
and kindness, which was received with enthusiastic cheers.
The procession then escorted their pastor to his house.
In front of the Baptist Chapel were three triumphal
arches, decorated with leaves and flowers, and surmounted
by flags bearing the inscriptions, 'Freedom has come!'
'Slavery is no more!' 'The chains are broken, Africa
is free!' There were many flags bearing the names of
their English benefactors,—Clarkson, Wilberforce, Sligo,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_141" id="Page_141"></SPAN></span>
Thompson, etc. When these were unfurled, the enthusiasm
of the multitude rose to the highest pitch. For
nearly an hour the air rang with exulting shouts, in
which the shrill voices of two thousand children joined,
singing, 'We're free! we're free!' Several of the
kindly disposed planters gave rural <i>f�tes</i> to the laborers.
Long tables were spread in the lawns, arches of evergreens
were festooned with flowers, and on the trees
floated banners bearing the names of those who had been
most conspicuous in bringing about this blessed result.
Songs were sung, speeches made, prayers offered, and a
plentiful repast eaten." Mr. Phillippo says: "The conduct
of the newly emancipated peasantry would have
done credit to Christians of the most civilized country in
the world. They were clean in their persons, and neat
in their attire. Their behavior was modest, unassuming,
and decorous in a high degree. There was no crowding,
no vulgar familiarity, but all were courteous and obliging
to each other, as members of one harmonious family.
There was no dancing, gambling, or carousing. All
seemed to have a sense of the obligations they owed
to their masters, to each other, and to the civil authorities.
The masters who were present at these <i>f�tes</i> congratulated
their former dependents on the boon they had
received, and hopes were mutually expressed that all past
differences and wrongs might be forgiven."</p>
<p>On some of the estates where these festivals were held
the laborers, with few individual exceptions, went to work
as usual on the following day. <i>Many of them gave their
first week of free labor as an offering of good-will to
their masters.</i> Thus the period from which many of the
planters had apprehended the worst consequences passed
away in peace and harmony.</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_142" id="Page_142"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>It is now twenty-seven years since the laborers in the
British West Indies have been made entirely free; and
the missionaries, the magistrates, and even the masters
agree that the laborers are much more faithful and industrious
under the new system than they were under the
iron rule of Slavery. It is true, some of the old planters
growled as long as they lived. They had always
predicted that freedom would bring ruin on all classes,
and it vexed them to see the negroes behaving so well.
They, however, made the most of the fact that there was
less sugar made than in former years. It was their own
fault. The emancipated slaves wanted to stay and work
on the plantations where they had always lived. But the
masters could not give up their old habits of meanness
and tyranny. Their laborers could scarcely support life
with the very small wages they received; and yet they
took from them the little patches of provision-ground
which they had formerly had, and charged them enormously
high rent for their miserable little huts. It
seemed as if they wanted to drive them to robbery, that
they might say, "We told you it would be so, if you set
them free."</p>
<p>But the freedmen disappointed them. Under all discouragements,
they persisted in behaving well. When
they found that they could not get a living on the old
plantations where they wanted to stay, they went to work
on railroads, and wherever they could find employment.
They laid up as much as they could of their wages, and
bought bits of land, on which they built comfortable cabins
for themselves, and laid out little gardens. Their wives
and children raised poultry and tended a cow, and carried
vegetables and butter and eggs to market, in baskets
poised on their heads. With the money thus earned<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_143" id="Page_143"></SPAN></span>
they bought more land and added to their little stock
of furniture. Though the men received only from eighteen
to twenty-four cents a day, out of which they boarded
themselves, they were so industrious and saving that in
four years the freedmen in Jamaica alone had bought and
paid for one hundred thousand acres of land, and put up
dwellings thereon. Mr. Phillippo states, that during that
time as many as two hundred new villages of freedmen
were formed. These villages generally received the
names of benefactors, such as Clarkson, Wilberforce,
Thompson, &c. To their own little homes they also
gave names indicative of their gratitude and contentment.
They called them "Save Rent," "A Little of
My Own," "Heart's Love," "Liberty and Content,"
"Happy Retreat," "Jane's Delight," "Thank God to
see It," &c.</p>
<p>Mr. Phillippo says:—</p>
<p>"These free villages are regularly laid out. The
houses are small, many of them built of stone or wood,
with shingled roofs, green blinds, and verandahs, to shield
them from the sun. Most of them are neatly thatched,
and generally plastered and whitewashed both outside
and in. They now have looking-glasses, chairs, and side-boards
decorated with pretty articles of glass and crockery.
Each dwelling has its little plot of vegetables,
generally neatly kept; and many of them have flower-gardens
in front, glowing with all the bright hues of the
tropics. The groups often presented are worthy of the
painter's pencil or the poet's song. Amid the stillness
of a Sabbath evening, many families, after their return
from the house of God, may be seen gathered together in
the shadow of the trees, which overhang their cottages,
singing hymns, or listening to the reading of the Scriptures,
with none to molest or make them afraid."</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_144" id="Page_144"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>Mr. Charles Tappan of Boston, who visited Jamaica
several years after emancipation, writes:—</p>
<p>"On landing at Kingston, I must confess I was half
inclined to believe the story so industriously circulated,
that the emancipated slave is more idle and vicious than
any other of God's intelligent creatures; but when I rode
through the valleys and over the mountains, and found
everywhere an industrious, sober people, I concluded all
the vagabonds of the island had moved to the sea-shore,
to pick up a precarious living by carrying baggage, begging,
&c.; and such, upon inquiry, I found to be the fact.
Wherever I went in the rural districts, I found contented
men and women, cultivating sugar-cane, and numerous
vegetables and fruits, on their own account. Their neat,
well-furnished cottages compared well with the dwellings
of pioneers in our own country. I found in them mahogany
furniture, crockery and glass ware, and shelves
of useful books. I saw Africans, of unmixed blood,
grinding their own sugar-cane in their own mills, and
making their own sugar.</p>
<p>"I attended a large meeting called to decide the question
about inviting a schoolmaster to settle among them.
There was only one man who doubted the expediency of
taking the children from work and sending them to school.
One said, 'My little learning enabled me to see that a
note, given to me in payment for a horse was not written
according to contract.' Another said, 'I should have
been wronged out of forty pounds of coffee I sold in
Kingston the other day, if I hadn't known how to cipher.'
Another said, 'I shall not have much property
to leave my children; but if they have learning they can
get property.' Another said, 'Those that can read will
be more likely to get religion.' All these people had<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_145" id="Page_145"></SPAN></span>
been slaves, or were the children of slaves. I saw no
intoxicated person in Jamaica; and when it is considered
that every man there can make rum, it strikes me as very
remarkable."</p>
<p>One of the most striking characteristics of this colored
peasantry is their desire to obtain education for themselves
and their children. After a hard day's work,
women would often walk miles, with babies in their
arms, to learn the alphabet. With the first money they
can spare they build school-houses and chapels and hire
teachers. They also form charitable societies and contribute
money to help the aged and sick among them.
In the days of Slavery they herded together like animals;
but now it is considered disreputable and wrong
to live together without being married. In the days of
Slavery they wore ragged and filthy garments, but freedom
has made them desirous of making a neat appearance.
Their working-clothes are generally well mended
and clean, and they keep a pretty suit to attend meeting
and other festival occasions. They are very careful of
their best clothes. When they go to dances, or social
gatherings, they carry them in a basket, nicely folded
and covered up, and put them on when they arrive; and
when they are about to return home they again pack
them up carefully. When they have far to walk to
meeting, over rough and dusty roads, they carry their
shoes and stockings till they come in sight of the
church.</p>
<p>This is not at all like what the old planters prophesied,
when they said that if the negroes were freed they would
skulk in the woods and steal yams to keep them from
starving. But all that silly talk has passed away. Everybody
in the British West Indies acknowledges that emancipation<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_146" id="Page_146"></SPAN></span>
has proved a blessing both to the white and the
black population. There is not a planter to be found
there who would restore Slavery again, if his own wish
could do it.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="THE_LAST_NIGHT_OF_SLAVERY" id="THE_LAST_NIGHT_OF_SLAVERY"></SPAN>THE LAST NIGHT OF SLAVERY.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY JAMES MONTGOMERY.</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i2">Let the floods clap their hands!<br/></span>
<span class="i4">Let the mountains rejoice!<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Let all the glad lands<br/></span>
<span class="i4">Breathe a jubilant voice!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">The sun, that now sets on the waves of the sea,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Shall gild with his rising the land of the free!<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i2">Let the islands be glad!<br/></span>
<span class="i4">For their King in his might,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Who his glory hath clad<br/></span>
<span class="i4">With a garment of light,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">In the waters the beams of his chambers hath laid,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And in the green waters his pathway hath made.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i2">Dispel the blue haze,<br/></span>
<span class="i4">Golden Fountain of Morn!<br/></span>
<span class="i2">With meridian blaze<br/></span>
<span class="i4">The wide ocean adorn!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">The sunlight has touched the glad waves of the sea,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And day now illumines the land of the <span class="smcap">Free!</span></span></div>
</div>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_147" id="Page_147"></SPAN></span></p>
<h2><SPAN name="MADISON_WASHINGTON" id="MADISON_WASHINGTON"></SPAN>MADISON WASHINGTON.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY L. MARIA CHILD.</p>
<p>This man was a slave, born in Virginia. His lot
was more tolerable than that of many who are
doomed to bondage; but from his early youth he always
longed to be free. Nature had in fact made him too
intelligent and energetic to be contented in Slavery.
Perhaps he would have attempted to escape sooner
than he did, had he not become in love with a beautiful
octoroon slave named Susan. She was the daughter of
her master, and the blood of the white race predominated
in several of her ancestors. Her eyes were blue,
and her glossy dark hair fell in soft, silky ringlets. Her
lover was an unmixed black, and he also was handsome.
His features were well formed, and his large dark eyes
were very bright and expressive. He had a manly air,
his motions were easy and dignified, and altogether he
looked like a being that would never consent to wear a
chain.</p>
<p>If he had hated Slavery before, he naturally hated it
worse after he had married Susan; for a handsome
woman, who is a slave, is constantly liable to insult and
wrong, from which an enslaved husband has no power to
protect her. They laid plans to escape; but unfortunately
their intention was discovered before they could
carry it into effect. To avoid being sold to the far
South, where he could have no hopes of ever rejoining
his beloved Susan, he ran to the woods, where he remained<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_148" id="Page_148"></SPAN></span>
concealed several months, suffering much from
privation and anxiety. His wife knew where he was,
and succeeded in conveying some messages to him, without
being detected. She persuaded him not to wait for a
chance to take her with him, but to go to Canada and
earn money enough to buy her freedom, and then she
would go to him.</p>
<p>He travelled only in the night, and by careful management,
after a good deal of hardship, he reached the
Northern States, and passed into Canada. There he
let himself out to work on the farm of a man named
Dickson. He was so strong, industrious, intelligent, and
well behaved, that the farmer hoped to keep him a long
time in his employ. He never mentioned that he was
born a slave; for the idea was always hateful to him,
and he thought also that circumstances might arise
which would render it prudent to keep his own secret.
He showed little inclination for conversation, and occupied
every leisure moment in learning to read and
write. He remained there half a year, without any
tidings from his wife; for there are many difficulties in
the way of slaves communicating with each other at a
distance. He became sad and restless. His employer
noticed it, and tried to cheer him up. One day he said
to him: "Madison, you seem to be discontented. What
have you to complain of? Do you think you are not
treated well here? Or are you dissatisfied with the
wages I give you?"</p>
<p>"I have no complaint to make of my treatment, sir,"
replied Madison. "You have been just and kind to me;
and since you manifest so much interest in me, I will tell
you what it is that makes me so gloomy."</p>
<p>He then related his story, and told how his heart was<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_149" id="Page_149"></SPAN></span>
homesick for his dear Susan. He said she was so handsome
that they would ask a high price for her, and he
had been calculating that it would take him years to
earn enough to buy her; meanwhile, he knew not what
might happen to her. There was no law to protect a
slave, and he feared all sorts of things; especially, he
was afraid they might sell her to the far South, where
he could never trace her. So he said he had made
up his mind to go back to Virginia and try to bring
her away. Mr. Dickson urged him not to attempt it.
He reminded him of the dangers he would incur: that he
would run a great risk of getting back into Slavery,
and that perhaps he himself would be sold to the far
South, where he never would be able to communicate
with his wife. But Madison replied, "I am well aware
of that, sir; but freedom does me no good unless Susan
can share it with me."</p>
<p>He accordingly left his safe place of refuge, and started
for Virginia. He had free-papers made out, which he
thought would protect him till he arrived in the neighborhood
where he was known. He also purchased several
small files and saws, which he concealed in the lining
of his clothes. With these tools he thought he could
effect his escape from prison, if he should be taken up on
the suspicion of being a runaway slave. Passing through
the State of Ohio, he met several who had previously
seen him on his way to Canada. They all tried to persuade
him not to go back to Virginia; telling him there
were nine chances out of ten that he would get caught
and carried back into Slavery again. But his answer
always was, "Freedom does me no good while my wife
is a slave."</p>
<p>When he came to the region where he was known, he<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_150" id="Page_150"></SPAN></span>
hid in woods and swamps during the day, and travelled
only in the night. At last he came in sight of his master's
farm, and hid himself in the woods near by. There
he remained several days, in a dreadful state of suspense
and anxiety. He could not contrive any means to obtain
information concerning his wife. He was afraid they
might have sold her, for fear she would follow him. He
prowled about in the night, in hopes of seeing some old
acquaintance, who would tell him whether she was still
at the old place; but he saw no one whom he could venture
to trust. At last fortune favored him. One evening
he heard many voices singing, and he knew by their
songs that they were slaves. As they passed up the
road, he came out from the woods and joined them.
There were so many of them that the addition of one
more was not noticed. He found that they were slaves
from several plantations, who had permits from their
masters to go to a corn-shucking. They were merry, for
they were expecting to have a lively time and a comfortable
supper. Being a moonless evening, they could not
see Madison's face, and he was careful not to let them
discover who he was. He went with them to the corn-shucking;
and, keeping himself in the shadow all the
time, he contrived, in the course of conversation, to find
out all he wanted to know. Susan was not sold, and she
was living in the same house where he had left her. He
was hungry, for he had been several days without food,
except such as he could pick up in the woods; but he
did not dare to show his face at the supper, where dozens
would be sure to recognize him. So he skulked away
into the woods again, happy in the consciousness that his
Susan was not far off.</p>
<p>He resolved to attempt to see her the next night. He<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_151" id="Page_151"></SPAN></span>
was afraid to tap at her window after all the people in
the Great House were abed and asleep; for, as she supposed
he was in Canada, he thought she might be frightened
and call somebody. He therefore ventured to
approach her room in the evening. Unfortunately, the
overseer saw him, and called a number of whites, who
rushed into the room just as he entered it. He fought
hard, and knocked down three of them in his efforts to
escape. But they struck at him with their bowie-knives
till he was so faint with loss of blood that he could resist
no longer. They chained him and carried him to Richmond,
where he was placed in the jail. His prospects
were now dreary enough. His long-cherished hope of
being reunited to his dear wife vanished away in the
darkness of despair.</p>
<p>There was a slave-trader in Richmond buying a gang
of slaves for the market of New Orleans. Madison
Washington was sold to him, and carried on board the
brig Creole, owned by Johnson and Eperson, of Richmond,
and commanded by Captain Enson. The brig was
lying at the dock waiting for her cargo, which consisted
of tobacco, hemp, flax, and slaves. There were two
separate cabins for the slaves: one for the men and the
other for the women. Some of the poor creatures belonged
to Johnson and Eperson, some to Thomas McCargo,
and some to Henry Hewell. Each had a little
private history of separation and sorrow. There was
many a bleeding heart there, beside the noble heart that
was throbbing in the bosom of Madison Washington.
His purchasers saw that he was intelligent, and they
knew that he was sold for having escaped to Canada.
He was therefore chained to the floor of the cabin and
closely watched. He seemed quiet and even cheerful,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_152" id="Page_152"></SPAN></span>
and they concluded that he was reconciled to his fate.
On the contrary, he was never further from such a state
of mind. He closely observed the slaves who were in
the cabin with him. His discriminating eye soon selected
those whom he could trust. To them he whispered that
there were more than a hundred slaves on board, and
few whites. He had his saws and files still hidden in
the lining of his clothes. These were busily used to
open their chains, while the captain and crew were asleep.
They still continued to wear their chains, and no one
suspected that they could slip their hands and feet out at
their pleasure.</p>
<p>When the Creole had been nine days out they encountered
rough weather. Most of the slaves were sea-sick,
and therefore were not watched so closely as usual. On
the night of November 7, 1841, the wind was blowing
hard. The captain and mate were on deck, and nearly
all the crew. Mr. Henry Hewell, one of the owners of
the cargo of slaves, who had formerly been a slave-driver
on a plantation, was seated on the companion, smoking a
cigar. The first watch had just been summoned, when
Madison Washington sprang on deck, followed by eighteen
other slaves. They seized whatever they could find
to use as weapons. Hewell drew a pistol from under his
coat, fired at one of the slaves and killed him. Madison
Washington struck at him with a capstan-bar, and he fell
dead at his feet. The first and second mates both attacked
Madison at once. His strong arms threw them
upon the deck wounded, but not killed. He fought for
freedom, not for revenge; and as soon as they had disarmed
the whites and secured them safely, he called out
to his accomplices not to shed blood. With his own
hands he dressed the wounds of the crew, and told them<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_153" id="Page_153"></SPAN></span>
they had nothing to fear if they would obey his orders.
The man who had been a chained slave half an hour
before was now master of the vessel, and his grateful
companions called him Captain Washington. Being ignorant
of navigation, he told Merritt, the first mate, that
he should have the freedom of the deck, if he would take
an oath to carry the brig faithfully into the nearest port
of the British West Indies; and he was afraid to do
otherwise.</p>
<p>The next morning Captain Washington ordered the
cook to prepare the best breakfast the store-room could
furnish, for it was his intention to give all the freed slaves
a good meal. The women, who had been greatly frightened
by the tumult the night before, were glad enough to
come out of their close cabin into the fresh air. And
who do you think was among them? Susan, the beautiful
young wife of Madison, was there! She had been
accused of communicating with her husband in Canada,
and being therefore considered a dangerous person, she
had been sold to the slave-trader to be carried to the
market of New Orleans. Neither of them knew that
the other was on board. With a cry of surprise and joy
they rushed into each other's arms. The freed slaves
threw up their caps and hurrahed again and again, till the
sea-gulls wondered at the noise. O, it was a joyful, joyful
time! Captain Washington was repaid for all he had
suffered. He had gained his own liberty, after having
struggled for it in vain for years; he had freed a hundred
and thirty-four of his oppressed brethren and sisters;
and he had his beloved Susan in his arms, carrying her
to a land where the laws would protect their domestic
happiness. He felt richer at that moment than any king
with a golden crown upon his head.</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_154" id="Page_154"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>There had been but two lives lost. One white man
was killed in the affray, and he was the slave-driver who
shot down one of the slaves. Captain Enson and others
who were wounded were kindly cared for by Captain
Washington. They proved ungrateful, and tried to regain
possession of the vessel and the slaves. The blacks
were so exasperated by this attempt, that they wanted to
kill all the whites on board. But Captain Washington
called out to them: "We have got our liberty, and that
is all we have been fighting for. Let no more blood be
shed! I have promised to protect these men. They
have shown that they are not worthy of it; but let us be
magnanimous."</p>
<p>Next morning the Creole arrived at Nassau, in the
island of New Providence. Captain Washington and
his companions sprang out upon free soil. There he and
his beloved Susan are living under the protection of laws
which make no distinctions on account of complexion.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="EXTRACT_FROM_THE_VIRGINIA_BILL_OF_RIGHTS" id="EXTRACT_FROM_THE_VIRGINIA_BILL_OF_RIGHTS"></SPAN>EXTRACT FROM THE VIRGINIA BILL OF RIGHTS.</h2>
<p>"The election of members to serve as representatives of the
people in Assembly ought to be free; and all men having sufficient
evidence of permanent common interest with, and attachment
to, the community have the right of suffrage; and
they cannot be taxed, or deprived of their property for public
uses, without their own consent, or that of their representatives
so elected; nor can they be bound by any law to which
they have not assented, in like manner, for the public good."</p>
<p>The Virginia Bill of Rights was unanimously adopted by
the people, in June, 1776; and when they met, in January,
1830, to amend the constitution of the State, they voted that
the Bill of Rights needed no amendment.</p>
<hr class="chap" /><p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_155" id="Page_155"></SPAN></span></p>
<h2><SPAN name="PRAISE_OF_CREATION" id="PRAISE_OF_CREATION"></SPAN>PRAISE OF CREATION.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY GEORGE HORTON.</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Creation fires my tongue!<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Nature, thy anthems raise,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And spread the universal song<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Of thy Creator's praise.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">When each revolving wheel<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Assumed its sphere sublime,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Submissive Earth then heard the peal,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And struck the march of time.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">The march in heaven begun,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And splendor filled the skies,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">When Wisdom bade the morning sun<br/></span>
<span class="i2">With joy from chaos rise.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">The angels heard the tune<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Throughout creation ring;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">They seized their golden harps as soon,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And touched on every string.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">When time and space were young,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And music rolled along,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">The morning stars together sung,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And heaven was drowned in song.<br/></span>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_156" id="Page_156"></SPAN></span></p>
</div>
</div>
<h2><SPAN name="FREDERICK_DOUGLASS" id="FREDERICK_DOUGLASS"></SPAN>FREDERICK DOUGLASS.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY L. MARIA CHILD.</p>
<p>Captain Anthony owned two or three farms
on the eastern shore of Maryland, and held about
thirty slaves. One of them, a black woman named Betsy,
married a free black man named Isaac Baily; and they
had a numerous family of children, all of whom were, of
course, slaves to Captain Anthony. When she became
an old widow she lived in a hut separate from the other
slaves, and was principally employed in nursing troops
of babies, which her children brought into the world for
the benefit of their master. Somewhere about the year
1817, Harriet, the youngest of her five daughters, gave
birth to a boy, on whom she bestowed the high-sounding
name of Frederick Augustus Washington Baily. As
she could not be spared from field-work, baby Frederick
joined the band of little slaves that were under his grandmother's
care. Her hut was made of logs, with no windows,
a clay floor, and a mud chimney. But the children
were as well satisfied with it as if it had been a palace.
They were too young to know that they were slaves, and
they were as happy as little wild animals. They imitated
the noises made by cats, dogs, pigs, and barn-yard fowls,
and rolled over and over on the ground, laughing at their
own fun. If the mud or dust made them uncomfortable,
they walked into the river without undressing; for the
short tow shirt, which was their only garment, was washed
by swimming, and soon dried in the sunshine. There<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_157" id="Page_157"></SPAN></span>
was a wood close by, and it was one of their greatest
pleasures to watch the squirrels as they frisked about, or
sat on the stumps eating nuts. Near the hut was a well,
with its beam placed between the boughs of an old tree,
and so well balanced that the children could easily help
themselves to water. Down in a valley, not far off, was
a water-mill, where people went to get their corn ground.
It was capital sport to play at fishing in the mill-pond,
with thread lines, and hooks made of bent pins; and they
were never tired of seeing the big wheel turn round,
throwing off great drops of water that sparkled in the
sunshine. They lived mostly on corn mush, which they
ate from a big wooden tray, with oyster-shells for spoons.
But they were as healthy as little pigs, and enjoyed their
coarse food as well.</p>
<p>The greatest of their blessings was their good grandmother,
who nursed them kindly and did all she could
to make them happy. They loved her dearly; and when
she was obliged to leave them for a short time, they
greeted her return with merry shouts. She was advanced
in years, and the hair that peeped from under
the folds of her turban was very gray. But she was
remarkably strong for her age, straight in her figure,
and quick in her motions. She was very expert at catching
fish, and sometimes spent half the day in the water.
She also made excellent nets to catch shad and herring;
and, as these nets sold extremely well, Captain Anthony
still found the old slave profitable. She had the name
of being born to good luck, because whatever business
she undertook prospered in her hands. She raised such
excellent sweet potatoes that people often sent for her
to plant for them, saying, "If Gran'ma Betty touches
them they'll be sure to flourish." But the secret of her<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_158" id="Page_158"></SPAN></span>
good luck was her intelligence and carefulness. When
she dug potatoes she took pains not to cut or bruise them;
and in winter she protected them from frost in a hole
under her hearth.</p>
<p>Freddy's poor mother was not allowed the comfort of
being with her child. She was let out to work in the
fields, twelve miles off. Whenever she went to see her
little boy she had to walk over all those miles twice in
the night-time, after a hard day's work; for if she was not
back in the field by sunrise she was severely whipped.
Freddy saw her but four or five times, and never by daylight.
Sometimes she would lie down beside him and
talk to him till he fell asleep, but when he woke she was
always gone. He always remembered that she once took
him on her knee and gave him a cake in the shape of a
heart. Her rare visits made such an impression on him
that he never forgot her personal appearance. She was
tall and finely proportioned, with regular features and a
deep black glossy complexion. Her manners were very
sedate, her countenance downcast, and her eyes very sad.
When he was nearly seven years old she died; but he
knew nothing about it till long afterward. In later years
he heard that she could read, and that she was the only one
of all the slaves in the neighborhood who possessed that
advantage. He never discovered how she had learned.
When she died he was too young to have heard anything
from her lips concerning his father. He was always told
that he was the son of a white man, and some whispered
the name of his master. But he never knew who was his
father, and could only conjecture why the eyes of his poor
mother had such a sad expression.</p>
<p>Captain Anthony did not carry on any of his own
farms. He employed overseers for that purpose; and<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_159" id="Page_159"></SPAN></span>
however cruelly the slaves might be treated by the overseers,
they never could obtain any protection by applying
to the "old master," as they called him. All the interest
he took in them was to have as much work as possible
forced out of them, and to sell one every year to add to
his income. He himself managed the affairs of Colonel
Lloyd, a wealthy gentleman with numerous plantations
and a thousand slaves. His home-plantation, on the river
Miles, where he resided with his family, was about twelve
miles from the hut where Frederick had been nursed.
His manager, Captain Anthony, lived in a house on the
same plantation, and was personally a stranger to his own
little slaves. But the children had seen and heard of
things which made the name of the "old master" a terror
to them. Frederick's first great trouble was when he
discovered that he was a slave, and that, as soon as he
was big enough to work, he would have to go to "old
master." Nothing could exceed his dread of leaving the
dear old home, and being separated from the kind friend
of his childhood. When he was about eight years old,
Captain Anthony sent for him; but his grandmother kept
it a secret, knowing how it would frighten him. One
bright summer morning she told him she was going to
Colonel Lloyd's plantation, and invited him to go with
her. He had a curiosity to see the grand place of which
he had heard so much; so she took him by the hand and
led him away from the happy home of his childhood, to
which he never returned. She carefully concealed from
him how her heart was swelling, and her tender ways did
not lead him to suspect it. When the unconscious little
boy began to be overcome with fatigue she "toted" him
on her strong shoulders. She scarcely seemed to feel the
burden, and insisted upon carrying him a long way; but he<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_160" id="Page_160"></SPAN></span>
felt too much of a man to permit it. He was, however,
a little afraid as they walked through the thick, dark
woods; for sometimes the old knotted and gnarled stumps,
when seen from a distance, looked like creatures with eyes
and legs; and he kept a tight hold of her gown till the
monstrous things were safely passed.</p>
<p>It was afternoon before they reached the famous Home
Plantation of Colonel Lloyd. There he found everything
very different from the solitude and poverty to
which he had been accustomed. The plantation seemed
like a village, there were so many large houses, and stables,
and out-buildings, and mechanics' shops, and such
a long row of huts for the "slaves' quarters." Children
were shouting and singing, and a great many men and
women were hoeing in the fields. The children came
crowding round Frederick, and asked him to go and play
with them. He looked in his grandmother's face, and
seeing that she seemed very sad, he begun to suspect that
he was going to live with the "old master." He was
unwilling to lose sight of her for a moment; but she
patted him on the head, and said, "Be a good boy, and
go and play with the children. That one is your brother
Perry, that is your sister Sarah, and that is your sister
Eliza." He had heard of these brothers and sisters before,
but he had never seen them, and they seemed like
strangers. He kept close to his grandmother; but at
last she persuaded him to follow the children to the back
part of the house. He felt so shy that he stood leaning
against the wall, looking on, while the others played.
After a while, a little boy, who had been left in the
kitchen, ran up to him, exclaiming, "Fed! Fed! Grandmammy's gone!"
He rushed after her, and when he
found that she was gone far out of sight, he threw himself<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_161" id="Page_161"></SPAN></span>
on the ground and sobbed. His brother and sisters
brought him peaches and pears, but he flung them away,
and continued sobbing, till, overcome with sorrow and
fatigue, he fell into a deep sleep.</p>
<p>As Colonel Lloyd's plantation was not near any town,
the barrels, wheels, shoes, and cloth that were needed by
the numerous slaves were manufactured by themselves.
Large crops of grain and tobacco were raised and shipped
for Baltimore. All the business of twenty or thirty other
farms was transacted at this plantation, which was distinguished
by the name of "The Great House Farm";
and as Captain Anthony was overseer of all the overseers,
he was kept very busy all the time. He took no
notice of Freddy at first, but when told who the newcomer
was, he patted him on the head and said, "You
are my little Indian boy." Occasionally when he met
him he would speak affectionately to him; but he was a
violent-tempered man, and Freddy soon learned to watch
him closely when he saw him coming. If he was shaking
his head or muttering to himself, he hastened to get
out of his way, lest he should catch a blow without
knowing what it was for. The slave children had no
one to care for them but cross Katy, the cook, who cuffed
them about, and kept all, except her own children, in
such a half-starved condition, that Freddy often had a
tussle with the dogs and cats for the bones that were
thrown to them. Summer and winter, they had no clothing
but a coarse tow shirt that reached to the knees.
They were provided with two a year; and if they wore
out before allowance-day came round, they went naked.
They slept anywhere on the floor without covering.
Freddy suffered much from cold. His naked feet were
cracked open in great gashes in the winter. When he<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_162" id="Page_162"></SPAN></span>
could get a chance, he would creep into the meal-bag at
night. So much for the care taken of their bodies; and
it fared no better with their souls. All the instruction
they received was from Uncle Isaac, a crippled slave,
who, being unable to work, taught the children to say
the Lord's Prayer after him by rote, and switched them
whenever they made a mistake.</p>
<p>But Freddy was at an age to bear privations and
troubles lightly, and to enjoy thoughtlessly whatever
pleasant things came in his way. He had never seen
anything so grand as The Great House, in which Colonel
Lloyd resided. It was a large white building, with
piazza and columns in front, surrounded by arbors, and
grain-houses, and turkey-houses, and pigeon-houses, interspersed
with grand old trees. There was an extensive
lawn, kept as smooth as velvet, and ornamented with
flowering shrubs. The carriage-road to and from the
house made a circle round the lawn, and was paved with
white pebbles from the beach. Outside of this enclosed
space were extensive parks, where rabbits, deer, and
other wild animals frisked about. Flocks of red-winged
blackbirds made the trees look gay, and filled the air
with melody. Vessels on their way to Baltimore were
continually in sight, and a sloop belonging to Colonel
Lloyd lay in the river, with its pretty little boat bobbing
about in the sparkling water. There was a windmill not
far off, and the little slaves were never tired of watching
the great wings go whirling round. There was a creek
to swim in, and crabs and clams and oysters to be got
by wading and digging and raking for them. Freddy
was glad enough to catch them when he had a chance,
for he never had half enough to eat. He had one
friend at The Great House. Daniel Lloyd, the Colonel's<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_163" id="Page_163"></SPAN></span>
youngest son, liked to have him assist in his sports.
He protected him when bigger boys wanted to make war
upon him, and sometimes he gave him a cake. Captain
Anthony's family consisted of a son, Andrew, and
a daughter, Lucretia, who had married Captain Thomas
Auld. Mrs. Lucretia took a fancy to bright little Freddy.
She liked to hear him sing, and often spoke a kind word
to him. This emboldened him so much, that when he
was very hungry he would go and sing under the window
where she sat at work, and she would generally give him
a piece of bread, sometimes with butter on it. That was
a great treat for a boy who was fed all the time on corn
mush, and could not get half enough of that. His business
was to clean the front yard, to keep fowls out of the
garden, to drive the cows home from pasture, and to run
of errands. He had a good deal of time to play with
his little relatives, and with the young slaves at Colonel
Lloyd's, who called him "Captain Anthony Fed." He
was such a mere boy, that it is no wonder so many new
people and things soon cured him of homesickness for his
grandmother, who could very seldom get time to trudge
twelve miles to see him.</p>
<p>But though his slave-life was not without gleams of
enjoyment, he saw and heard much that was painful.
At one time he would see Colonel Lloyd compel a faithful
old slave get down upon his knees to be flogged for
not keeping the hair of his horses sufficiently smooth.
At another time, the overseer would shoot a slave dead
for refusing to come up to be whipped. Ever and anon
some of them were sold to Georgia slave-traders, and
there was weeping and wailing in the families they left
behind. On the premises of his own master, he was not
unfrequently wakened in the night by the screams and<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_164" id="Page_164"></SPAN></span>
groans of slaves who were being lashed. One of Captain
Anthony's slaves, named Esther, was the sister of
Freddy's mother. She had a pretty face and a graceful
shape. She and a handsome young slave of Colonel
Lloyd's were much attached, and wished to marry. But
her old master, for reasons of his own, forbade her to
see her lover, and if he suspected them of meeting he
would abuse the poor girl in a most shocking manner.
Freddy was too young at the time to understand the full
significance of this cruel treatment; but when he thought
of it in after years, it explained to him why his poor
mother had always looked so downcast and sad. As for
himself, he managed to escape very severe punishment,
though Captain Anthony not unfrequently whipped him
for some carelessness or mischief. But when he saw the
plantation-laborers, even of so rich a man as Colonel
Lloyd, driven out to toil from early morning to dusk,
shivering in the cold winds, or dripping with rain, with
no covering but a few coarse tow rags, he could not help
thinking that such was likely to be his fate when he was
older. Young as he was, he had a great dread of being
a field-hand. Therefore he was rejoiced when Mrs.
Lucretia told him he was to be sent to Baltimore, to live
with her husband's brother, Mr. Hugh Auld. She told
him if he would make himself very clean, she would give
him a pair of new trousers. The prospect of exchanging
his little tow shirt for new trousers delighted him so
much that he was ready to scrub his skin off to obtain
them. He was, moreover, very eager to see Baltimore;
for slaves who had been there told fine stories about the
grand houses and the multitude of ships. He had been
only two years at Captain Anthony's, and he had formed
no attachment so strong as that he had felt for his old<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_165" id="Page_165"></SPAN></span>
grandmother. It was with a joyful heart that he went
forth to view the wonders of the city. When he arrived
in Baltimore, his new mistress met him at the door with
a pleasant smile. She said to her son, "There's little
Freddy, who has come to take care of you"; and to him
she said, "You must be kind to little Tommy." Mrs.
Sophia Auld had earned her own living before her marriage,
and she had not yet acquired the ways of slaveholders
toward servants. While her own little Tommy
was on her knee, Freddy was often seated by her side,
and sometimes her soft hand would rest upon his head in
a kind, motherly way. He had never been treated so
since he left his good old grandmother. In a very short
time he loved her with all his heart, and was eager to do
anything to please her. It was his business to go of
errands and take care of Tommy. The boys became as
much attached to each other as if they were brothers.
There was nothing to remind Freddy of being a slave.
He had plenty of wholesome food to eat, clean clothes to
wear, and a good straw bed with warm covering. Mrs.
Auld was much in the habit of singing hymns and reading
the Bible aloud; and Freddy, who was not at all
afraid of "Miss Sophy," as he called her, said to her one
day that he wished she would teach him to read. She
consented; and he was so quick at learning that he was
soon able to spell small words. His kind mistress was
so much pleased with his progress, that she told her husband
about it, and remarked, with much satisfaction, that
Freddy would soon be able to read the Bible. Mr. Auld
was displeased, and forbade her giving any more lessons.
"It is contrary to law to teach a nigger to read," said he.
"It is unsafe, and can only lead to mischief. If you
teach him to read the Bible, it will make him discontented,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_166" id="Page_166"></SPAN></span>
and there will be no keeping him. Next thing,
he will be wanting to learn to write; and then he'll be
running away with himself." This was said in the presence
of Freddy, and it set his active mind to thinking.
He had often before wondered why black children were
born to be slaves; and now he heard his master say that
if he learned to read it would spoil him for a slave. He
resolved that he <i>would</i> learn to read. He carried a
spelling-book in his pocket when he went of errands, and
persuaded some of the white boys who played with him
to give him a lesson now and then. He was soon able to
read. With some money that he earned for himself, he
bought a book called "The Columbian Orator." It contained
many speeches about liberty. The reading of
them made him discontented. He was no longer light-hearted
and full of fun. He became thoughtful and
serious. When he played with white boys, he would
ask, "Why haven't I as good a right to be free, and go
where I please, as you have?" And sometimes a
generous-hearted boy would answer, "I believe, Fred, you
<i>have</i> just as good a right to be free as I have."</p>
<p>He knew that his present situation was uncommonly
favorable; but the idea of being a slave for life became
more and more hateful to him. He had not been in
Baltimore quite four years when an event occurred
which proved to him the extreme uncertainty of a slave's
condition, even when circumstances seemed the most
favorable. His old master, Captain Anthony, died; and
his slaves were to be divided between his son Andrew
and his daughter Mrs. Lucretia Auld. Frederick was in
terror lest it should be decided that he belonged to Andrew,
who was a confirmed drunkard, and excessively
cruel to the slaves. It was a month before the division<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_167" id="Page_167"></SPAN></span>
of the estate was decided by law; and the anxiety of his
mind was so great that it seemed to him half a year.
He felt as if saved from sentence of death, when he was
informed that he belonged to Mrs. Lucretia, who had
been kind to him in his hungry boyhood. As she had no
occasion for his services, it was agreed that he should
remain in Mr. Hugh Auld's family; a circumstance which
pleased Master Tom and his mother about as much as it
did Freddy.</p>
<p>But in a short time he was again painfully reminded
of the uncertainty of his condition. Mrs. Lucretia and
her brother Andrew both died, each of them leaving
one child. Neither Captain Anthony nor his children
left any of the slaves free. Even Frederick's old grandmother,
who had nursed her master when he was a baby,
waited upon him through his boyhood, worked faithfully
for him during all her life, and reared up a multitude of
children and grandchildren to toil for him,—even she
was left in Slavery, with no provision made for her. The
children she had tended so lovingly were sold, or let out
in distant places; all were unable to write to inform her
where they had gone; all were unable to help her, because
they were not allowed to have their own earnings. When
her old master and his children were dead, the owners of
the property thought Gran'ma Betty was too old to be
of any further use; so they put up a hut with a mud
chimney in the woods, and left her there to find food
for herself as she could, with no mortal to render her
any service in her dying hour. This brutal proceeding
increased the bitterness of Frederick's feeling against
Slavery.</p>
<p>By the blessing of God the consolations of religion
came to him, and enabled him to look beyond this troubled<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_168" id="Page_168"></SPAN></span>
and transitory world. A pious colored man, called
Uncle Lawson, became interested in him. They attended
prayer-meetings together, and Frederick often
went to his house on Sundays. They had refreshing
times together, reading the Bible, praying, and singing
hymns. Uncle Lawson saw that his young friend had
uncommon intelligence, and he often said to him, "The
Lord has a great work for you to do, and you must prepare
yourself for it." Frederick replied that he did not
see how a slave could prepare himself for any great
work; but the pious old man always answered, "Trust
in the Lord. He will bring it about in his own good
time. You must go on reading and studying Scripture."
This prophecy inspired him with hope, and he seized
every opportunity to improve himself. But he had many
obstacles to contend with. His master, Mr. Hugh Auld,
was made irritable by an increasing love for brandy.
When he found out that Frederick read and spoke at
religious meetings, he threatened to flog him if he continued
to do it. His kind mistress, who used to pat him
on the head and call him "Little Freddy," was changed
by the habit of having slaves and talking with slaveholders.
The pleasant, motherly expression of her face
had become severe. She watched Frederick very closely,
and if she caught him with a book or newspaper in his
hand, she would rush at him in a great rage and snatch
it away. Master Tommy had grown to be a tall lad, and
began to feel that he was born to be a master and Fred
to be a slave. Frederick would probably have tried to
run away, had it not been for the friendships he had
formed for Uncle Lawson and the religious young men
he met at the meetings. Notwithstanding his master's
threat, he contrived to find opportunities to read and<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_169" id="Page_169"></SPAN></span>
pray with good Uncle Lawson; and it had a blessed influence
on his spirit, making him feel at peace with all men.
Now that he had a taste of knowledge, it was impossible
to prevent his getting more. His master sent him of
errands to the shipyard almost daily. He noticed that
the carpenters marked their boards with letters. He
asked the name of the letters, and copied them with a
bit of chalk. When the family went from home, he
diligently copied from the writing-books Master Tommy
had brought from school; and his zeal was so great that
in a short time he could write as well as his master. He
picked up bits of newspapers wherever he could find
them, and he listened attentively when he heard slaveholders
talking about the Northern States and cursing
the Abolitionists. He did not at first know what was the
meaning of "abolitionists"; but when he read in a newspaper
that petitions were sent into Congress for the abolition
of Slavery, light dawned upon him. He told trustworthy
colored friends about it, and they were comforted by the
thought that there were people at the North trying to
help them out of bondage.</p>
<p>But a new blow fell upon him. Captain Thomas Auld
married again, after the death of his wife Mrs. Lucretia,
and removed to St. Michael's,—an old village, the principal
business of which was oyster fishing. He got into
a quarrel with his brother, Mr. Hugh Auld of Baltimore,
and demanded that Frederick should be sent back
to him. So he was put on board a ship for St. Michael's.
When swift steamboats on their way to Philadelphia
passed the sloop that carried him, he bitterly regretted
that he had not escaped to the Free States from Baltimore,
where he could have had so many more opportunities
for doing it than he could at the old fishing-village.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_170" id="Page_170"></SPAN></span>
Captain Thomas Auld and his new wife were both great
professors of religion. He was an exhorter and class-leader
in the Methodist Church. But their religion was
not of a kind that taught them humanity to their fellow-creatures.
They worked their slaves very hard, and
kept them half fed and half clothed. Scolding and flogging
were going on incessantly. Frederick soon discovered
that they were violently opposed to colored people's
knowing how to read; but when a pious young man in
the neighborhood asked him to assist in a Sunday school
for colored children, he resolved to seize the opportunity
of being useful. When his master found out what he
was doing, he was very angry; and the next Sunday he
and two other Methodist class-leaders went to the school,
armed with clubs and whips, and drove off both teachers
and scholars. It was agreed that Frederick had been
spoiled by living in Baltimore, and that it was necessary
to cure him of his dangerous thirst for knowledge. For
that purpose he was sent to a famous "negro-breaker" in
the neighborhood named Covey. He was a great professor
of religion, but a monster of cruelty. Frederick was
almost killed by hard labor, and not a week passed without
his being cruelly cut up with the whip. Escape was
impossible, for Covey was on the watch at all times of
day and night. Six months of such treatment wellnigh
crushed all manhood out of him. But cruelty was carried
so far that at last he became desperate, and when
his master attempted to beat him, he struggled with him
and threw him down. He expected to be hung for it,
according to the laws of Maryland; but Covey prided
himself on his reputation as a "negro-breaker," and he
was ashamed to have it known that he had been conquered
by a lad of seventeen. Frederick's time was not<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_171" id="Page_171"></SPAN></span>
out for six months longer, but Covey never attempted to
whip him again.</p>
<p>The next two years Frederick was let out to do field-work
for Mr. Freeland, who fed his slaves well, and
never worked them beyond their strength. Some of his
slaves were intelligent, and desirous to learn to read.
On Sundays they had meetings in the woods, and twenty
or thirty young men were taught by Frederick. After
a while they formed a plan of escaping in a canoe. But
some unknown men excited suspicion against them, and
they were seized and thrust into prison. They kept
their secrets so well, however, that no proof could be
obtained against them, and they were released without
even a whipping. But some of the neighboring slaveholders
said Frederick was a dangerous fellow; that he
knew too much,—they would not have him tampering
with their slaves; and if he was not sent out of the
neighborhood they would shoot him. Captain Thomas
Auld talked of selling him to Alabama; but he finally
concluded to let him out again to his brother Hugh, with
a promise that if he behaved well he should be free at
twenty-five years old.</p>
<p>When he returned to Baltimore he was let out to work
at calking vessels; and he soon became so expert at the
business that he earned from seven to nine dollars a
week. He was trusted to make his own contracts, but
was required to pay Mr. Hugh Auld his earnings every
Saturday night. On such occasions a sixpence or a shilling
was sometimes given him, for which he was expected
to be grateful; but it naturally occurred to him that the
whole of the money rightfully belonged to him who
earned it. He was attached to a worthy girl named
Anna, but he was reluctant to form family ties while he<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_172" id="Page_172"></SPAN></span>
was subject to the vicissitudes of Slavery. He often
thought of escaping to the Free States, but the regulations
were so strict that it seemed a hopeless undertaking,
unless he had money. When Captain Thomas Auld visited
Baltimore, he tried to make a bargain with him to
buy his time for a specified sum each week, being free to
earn as much more as he could. The reply was, "You
are planning to run away. But, wherever you go, I shall
catch you." The master then tried to coax him with
promises of freedom in the future; but Frederick thought
it very uncertain when they would be willing to give up
a man who brought them in nine dollars a week. He
concluded to go to the Free States. How he accomplished
it he never told, for he was afraid of bringing
trouble upon those who helped him.</p>
<p>When he arrived in New York, he says he felt as he
should suppose a man would feel who had escaped from
a den of hungry lions. But the joyful feeling was soon
checked. He met an acquaintance who had recently
escaped from Slavery. He told him the city was full
of Southerners, who had agents out in every direction
to catch runaway slaves; and then he hurried away, as if
afraid of being betrayed. This made Frederick feel very
desolate. He was afraid to seek employment as a calker,
lest spies from his master should be on the watch for him.
He bought a loaf of bread, and hid away for the night
among some barrels on a wharf. In the morning, he met
a sailor, who looked so good-natured and honest that he
ventured to tell him he was a fugitive slave, and to ask
him for advice. He was not deceived in the expression
of the man's face. He invited him to his house, and went
in search of Mr. David Ruggles, a worthy colored man,
well known as a zealous friend of his oppressed race.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_173" id="Page_173"></SPAN></span>
The fugitive was kept hidden for a few days, during
which time Anna was sent for, and they were married.
By help of Mr. Ruggles, employment at calking was obtained
in New Bedford, a large town in Massachusetts,
where a great many ships are constantly employed. There
he found many intelligent colored people, not a few of
whom had been slaves. They lived in convenient houses,
took newspapers, bought books, and sent their children
to good schools. They had various societies for improvement;
and when he attended their meetings, he
was surprised to hear their spirited discussions on various
subjects. His bright mind was roused into full activity
by the influences around him. He changed his
name to Frederick Douglass. He was called Mr. Douglass
now, and felt like it. He worked hard, but that was
a pleasure, now that he could enjoy his own earnings.
He felt safe; for there were so many Abolitionists and
so many intelligent colored people in New Bedford, that
slaveholders did not venture to go there to hunt for fugitives.
The cruel treatment he had received from hypocritical
professors of religion had not destroyed his faith
in the excellence of real religion. He joined a church
of colored people, called Zion Methodists, and became a
class-leader and preacher among them. He took a newspaper
called "The Liberator," edited by William Lloyd
Garrison, wherein he found the rights of the colored
people vindicated with great zeal and ability. His wife
proved a neat and industrious helpmate, and a little
family of children began to gather round him. Thus
furnished with healthy employment for his mind, his
heart, and his hands, he lived over three years in New
Bedford.</p>
<p>At the end of that period, in the year 1841, a great<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_174" id="Page_174"></SPAN></span>
Anti-Slavery meeting was held in the vicinity, and Mr.
Douglass went to hear Mr. Garrison and others speak.
He did not suppose that any one in the meeting knew
him; but a gentleman was present who had heard him
preach in Zion Church, and he went to him and urged
him to address the Anti-Slavery meeting. He was bashful
about speaking before such a large and intelligent
audience; and when he was persuaded to mount the
platform he trembled in every limb. But what he said
flowed right out from the depths of his heart; and when
people of any intelligence speak in that way, they are always
eloquent. The audience were greatly moved by
what he told them of his experiences. It was the beginning
of a great change in his life. The Anti-Slavery
Society employed him to travel in the Free States to
lecture against Slavery; and that you may be sure he
could do with a will. Crowds went to hear him, and his
ministration was greatly blessed. The prophecy of good
Uncle Lawson was fulfilled. The Lord <i>had</i> a great work
for him to do; and in His own good time he had brought
it about.</p>
<p>People who were in favor of Slavery said he was an
impostor; that he did not look like a slave, or speak like
a slave; and that they did not believe he had ever been
in the Southern States. To prove that he was not an
impostor he wrote and published an account of his life,
with the names of his masters and the places where they
resided. The book was ably written, and produced almost
as great an effect as his lectures. Slaveholders were
very angry that one of their escaped chattels should produce
such an excitement. There was great danger that
some of their agents would kidnap him as he went about
the country lecturing. It was therefore concluded that<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_175" id="Page_175"></SPAN></span>
he had better go to England. In 1845 he took passage
for Liverpool in the English steamship Cambria. He
was invited to deliver a lecture on deck. Some slaveholders
from New Orleans and Georgia, who were a little
under the influence of brandy, swore they would throw
him overboard if he did; but the captain of the vessel
threatened to put them in irons if they behaved in a disorderly
manner. When they arrived in England they
tried to injure Mr. Douglass by publishing that he was
an insolent, lying negro; but their efforts only served to
make him famous. He delivered a great number of lectures,
and attracted crowds everywhere. In the Free
States of his own country he had been excluded from
many places of improvement, and often insulted on account
of his color; but he had no such prejudice to encounter
in England. He behaved like a gentleman, and
was treated like a gentleman. Many distinguished and
wealthy people invited him to their houses, as a mark
of respect for his natural abilities and the efforts he had
made to improve himself. But he felt that his labors
were needed in America, in behalf of his oppressed brethren,
and he wanted to return. His friends in England
entered into negotiations with Captain Thomas Auld for
the purchase of his freedom, which they succeeded in obtaining
for little more than seven hundred dollars.</p>
<p>After an absence of two years he returned to the United
States a freeman. He established himself with his family
in Rochester, New York. There he edited a weekly
newspaper, called "The North Star," and from time to
time travelled about the country to deliver lectures, which
were always fully attended. After he was free he wrote
a spirited letter to his old master, Captain Thomas Auld,
in which he asks: "What has become of my dear old<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_176" id="Page_176"></SPAN></span>
grandmother, whom you turned out, like an old horse,
to die in the woods? If she is still alive, she must be
near eighty years old,—too old to be of any service to
you. O, she was father and mother to me, so far as hard
toil for my comfort could make her so. Send her to me
at Rochester, and it shall be the crowning happiness of
my life to take care of her in her old age." I never
heard that any answer was received to this letter.</p>
<p>During the Rebellion Mr. Douglass labored zealously
to raise colored regiments, and one of his sons enlisted
in the service of the United States. After the Proclamation
of Emancipation he was invited to Baltimore,
where he delivered an address before a large audience
of respectable citizens. How different was free Maryland
from the Slavery-ridden State which he had left,
secretly and in terror, nearly thirty years before!</p>
<h2><SPAN name="HOW_THE_GOOD_WORK_GOES_ON" id="HOW_THE_GOOD_WORK_GOES_ON"></SPAN>HOW THE GOOD WORK GOES ON.</h2>
<p>In the spring of 1865 an association of colored men was
formed in Baltimore for moral and intellectual improvement.
They bought a building formerly used by the Newton University,
for which they paid sixteen thousand dollars. In
honor of their able pioneer, Frederick Douglass, they named
it "The Douglass Institute." On the day of its dedication he
delivered an address before the association in Baltimore, in
the course of which he said: "The mission of this institution
is to develop manhood; to build up manly character among
the colored people of this city and State. It is to teach them
the true idea of manly independence and self-respect. It is
to be a dispenser of knowledge, a radiator of light. In a
word, we dedicate this institution to virtue, temperance,
knowledge, truth, liberty, and justice."</p>
<hr class="chap" /><p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_177" id="Page_177"></SPAN></span></p>
<h2><SPAN name="DEDICATION_HYMN" id="DEDICATION_HYMN"></SPAN>DEDICATION HYMN.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY J. M. WHITEFIELD.</p>
<p class="edcomment">Written for the Vine Street Methodist Episcopal Church of colored
people, in Buffalo, N. Y.</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">God of our sires! before thy throne<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Our humble offering now we bring;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Deign to accept it as thine own,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And dwell therein, Almighty King!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Around thy glorious throne above<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Angels and flaming seraphs sing;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Archangels own thy boundless love,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And cherubim their tribute bring.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">And every swiftly rolling sphere,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">That wends its way through boundless space,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Hymns forth, in chorus loud and clear,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Its mighty Maker's power and grace.<br/></span>
<span class="i0">It is not ours to bear the parts<br/></span>
<span class="i2">In that celestial song of praise;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">But here, O Lord! with grateful hearts,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">This earthly fane to Thee we raise.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">O let thy presence fill this house,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And from its portals ne'er depart!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Accept, O Lord! the humble vows<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Poured forth by every contrite heart!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">No sacrifice of beast or bird,<br/></span>
<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_178" id="Page_178"></SPAN></span>
<span class="i2">No clouds of incense here shall rise,</span>
<span class="i0">But, in accordance with thy word<br/></span>
<span class="i2">We'll bring a holier sacrifice.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Here shall the hoary-headed sire<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Invoke thy grace, on bended knee;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">While youth shall catch the sacred fire,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And pour its song of praise to Thee.<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Let childhood, too, with stammering tongue,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Here lisp thy name with reverent awe;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And high and low, and old and young,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Learn to obey thy holy law.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">And when our spirits shall return<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Back to the God who gave them birth,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And these frail bodies shall be borne<br/></span>
<span class="i2">To mingle with their kindred earth,—<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Then, in that house not made with hands,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">New anthems to thy praise we'll sing,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">To Thee, who burst our slavish bands,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Our Saviour, Prophet, Priest, and King.<br/></span></div>
</div>
<h2><SPAN name="A_PRAYER" id="A_PRAYER"></SPAN>A PRAYER.</h2>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i4">Grant, O Father, that the time<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Of earth's deliverance may be near,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">When every land and tongue and clime<br/></span>
<span class="i2">The message of Thy love shall hear;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">When, smitten as with fire from heaven,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">The captive's chain shall sink in dust,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And to his fettered soul be given<br/></span>
<span class="i2">The glorious freedom of the just.<br/></span></div>
<p class="cit"><span class="smcap">John G. Whittier.</span></p>
</div>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_179" id="Page_179"></SPAN></span></p>
<h2><SPAN name="WILLIAM_AND_ELLEN_CRAFTS" id="WILLIAM_AND_ELLEN_CRAFTS"></SPAN>WILLIAM AND ELLEN CRAFTS.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY L. MARIA CHILD.</p>
<p>William Crafts is a black man, born in
Georgia. His master had the reputation of
being a humane man and a pious Christian. Yet, when
some of his slaves were getting old, he had no scruples
about selling them away from their families, and buying
a young lot. Among those sold were the father and
mother of William. They were sold to different purchasers
from different places, and never saw each other
again. They were much attached to each other, and it
was a consolation to their son to think how happy would
be their reunion in another world; for he says he never
knew people who more humbly placed their trust in God
than his parents did. William was apprenticed to a
cabinet-maker, and his brother to a blacksmith; because
slaves who worked well at a trade could be let out with
more profit to their masters, and would also bring a
higher price if sold. Before their time was out, their
master became hard pressed for money. Accordingly,
he sold the young blacksmith, and mortgaged William
and his sister, a girl of fourteen. When the time of the
mortgage was up, their master had no money to redeem
them, and they were placed on the auction-block, to be
sold to the highest bidder. The girl was sold first, and
bought by a planter who lived some distance in the country.
William was strongly attached to his sister; and
when he saw her put into a cart, to be carried away from<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_180" id="Page_180"></SPAN></span>
him forever, it seemed as if his heart would burst. He
knelt down and begged and entreated to be allowed to go
and speak to her before she was taken away; but they
handled him roughly, and ordered him to stay on the
auction-block. As he stood there awaiting his own fate,
he saw the cart moving slowly away. The tears were
rolling down his sister's cheeks, and she stretched her
hands toward him with a movement of despair. The
thought that he could do nothing for her, and that they
might never meet more, almost killed him. His eyes
were blinded with tears; and when he could see again,
the cart was gone.</p>
<p>He was bought by the man to whom he had been
mortgaged, and ordered to return to the cabinet-maker's
shop to work. After a while his new master took him
to Macon, where he was let out to work at his trade.
There he became acquainted with a quadroon girl named
Ellen, whom he afterward married.</p>
<p>Ellen was the daughter of her master, but her mother
was a slave. Her handsome dark eyes were apt to attract
attention; her hair was straight, and her skin was so
nearly white that strangers often mistook her for one of
her master's own white family. This was very vexatious
to her mistress, who treated her so harshly that the poor
child had no comfort of her life. When she was eleven
years old she was given to a daughter of her mistress,
who was about to be married to a gentleman living in
Macon. It was painful to part from her poor mother,
but she was glad to get away from the incessant cruelty
of her old mistress. Her new mistress proved more
humane. In her service Ellen grew up without being
exposed to some of the most degrading influences of
Slavery.</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_181" id="Page_181"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>She and the intelligent young cabinet-maker formed
an attachment for each other soon after they were acquainted.
But Ellen had seen so much of the separation
of families in Slavery, that she was very reluctant
to marry. Whenever William said anything about it,
she reminded him that they were both slaves; and that if
they were married either of their masters could separate
them whenever they chose. William remembered, with
bitterness of heart, how his father and mother and brother
had been sold, and how his sister had been torn from
him without his being allowed to bid her good by. He
had not been tortured in his own person, but he had seen
other slaves cruelly whipped and branded with hot iron,
hunted and torn by bloodhounds, and even burned alive,
merely for trying to get their freedom. In view of these
things, he had a great horror of bringing children into
the world to be slaves. He and Ellen often talked together
about escaping to the North and being married
there. But they reflected that they would have to travel
a thousand miles before they could reach any Free State.
They knew that bloodhounds and slave-hunters would
be put upon their track; that if they were taken, they
would be subjected to terrible tortures; and that, even if
they succeeded in reaching the Free States, they would
still be in danger of being delivered up to their masters.
They talked over a variety of plans; but the prospect of
escape seemed so discouraging, that at last they concluded
to ask their owner's consent to their marriage; and they
resolved to be as contented as they could in the situation
to which they were born. But they were too intelligent
not to know that a great wrong was done to them by
keeping them in slavery. William shuddered to think
into what cruel and licentious hands his dear wife might<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_182" id="Page_182"></SPAN></span>
fall if she should be sold by her present owners; and
Ellen was filled with great anguish whenever she thought
what might happen to her children, if she should be a
mother. They were always thinking and talking about
freedom, and they often prayed earnestly to God that
some way of escape might be opened for them.</p>
<p>In December, 1848, a bold plan came into William's
mind. He thought that if his wife were dressed in men's
clothes she could easily pass for a white gentleman, and
that he could accompany her on her travels as her negro
slave. Ellen, who was very modest and timid, at first
shrank from the idea. But, after reflecting more upon
their hopeless situation, she said: "It seems too difficult
for us to undertake; but I feel that God is on our side,
and with His help we may carry it through. We will
try."</p>
<p>It was contrary to law for white men in the Southern
States to sell anything secretly to slaves; but there were
always enough ready to do it for the sake of getting
money,—especially as they knew that no colored man
was allowed to testify against a white man. William
was skilful and diligent at his trade; and though his
wages all went to his master, he had contrived to lay up
money by doing jobs for others in extra hours. He
therefore found little difficulty in buying the various articles
of a gentleman's dress, at different times and in different
parts of the town. He had previously made Ellen
a chest of drawers, with locks and key; and as she was
a favorite and trusted slave, she was allowed to keep it
for her own use in the little room where she slept. As
fast as the articles were bought they were secretly conveyed
to her, and she locked them up. The next important
thing was to obtain leave of absence for a few days.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_183" id="Page_183"></SPAN></span>
It was near Christmas-time, when kind slaveholders sometimes
permit favorite slaves to be absent on a visit to
friends or relatives. But Ellen's services were very
necessary to her mistress, and she had to ask many times
before she could obtain a written permission to be gone
for a few days. The cabinet-maker for whom William
worked was persuaded to give him a similar paper, but
he charged him to be sure and return as soon as the time
was up, because he should need him very much. There
was still another difficulty in the way. Travellers were
required to register their names at the custom-houses
and hotels, and to sign a certificate for the slaves who
accompanied them. When Ellen remembered this, it
made her weep bitterly to think that she could not write.
But in a few moments she wiped her eyes and said, with
a smile, "I will poultice my right hand and put it in a
sling, and then there will be a good excuse for asking
the officers to write my name for me." When she was
dressed in her disguise, William thought she could easily
pass for a white gentleman, only she looked young enough
for a mere boy; he therefore bought a pair of green
spectacles to make her look older. She, on her part,
was afraid that the smoothness of her chin might betray
her; she therefore resolved to tie a bandage round her
face, as if she were troubled with toothache.</p>
<p>In four days after they first thought of the plan, all
was in readiness. They sat up all night, whispering over
to each other the parts they were to act in case of various
supposable difficulties. William cut off Ellen's glossy
black hair, according to the fashion of gentlemen. When
all was carefully arranged, they knelt together and
prayed that God would protect them through their perilous
undertaking. They raised the latch of the door very<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_184" id="Page_184"></SPAN></span>
softly, and looked out and listened. Nobody was stirring
abroad, and all was still. But Ellen trembled and threw
herself on her husband's breast. There she wept for a
few moments, while he tried to comfort her with whispered
words of encouragement, though he also felt that
they were going forth into the midst of terrible dangers.
She soon recovered her calmness, and said, "Let us go."
They stepped out on tiptoe, shook hands in silence, and
parted to go to the railway station by different routes.
William deemed it prudent to take a short cut across the
fields, to avoid being recognized; but his wife, who was
now to pass for his young master, went by the public
road. Under the name of Mr. William Johnson, she
purchased tickets for herself and slave for Savannah,
which was about two hundred miles off. The porter who
took charge of the luggage at the station had formerly
wished to marry Ellen; but her disguise was so complete
that he called her "Young massa," and respectfully
obeyed her orders concerning the baggage. She gave
him a bit of money for his trouble, and he made his best
bow.</p>
<p>The moment William arrived at the station, he hid
himself in the "negro car" assigned to servants. It
was lucky that he did so; for, just before the train started,
he saw upon the platform the cabinet-maker, who had
given him a pass for quite a different purpose than an
excursion to Savannah. He was looking round, as if
searching for some one; and William afterward heard
that he suspected him of attempting to escape. Luckily,
the train started before he had time to examine the
"negro car."</p>
<p>Ellen had a narrow escape on her part; for a gentleman
who took the seat beside her proved to be Mr. Cray,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_185" id="Page_185"></SPAN></span>
who frequently visited at her master's house, and who
had known her ever since she was a child. Her first
thought was that he had come to seize her and carry her
back; but it soon became evident that he did not recognize
her in a gentleman's dress, with green spectacles, bandaged
face, and her arm in a sling. After the cars started,
he remarked, "It is a very fine morning, sir." Ellen,
being afraid that her voice would betray her, continued
to look out of the window, and made no reply. After
a little while, he repeated the remark in a louder tone.
The passengers who heard him began to smile, and Mr.
Cray turned away, saying, "I shall not trouble that deaf
fellow any more." To her great relief, he left the cars at
the next station.</p>
<p>They arrived at Savannah early in the evening, and
William having brought his master something to eat,
they went on board a steamer bound for Charleston,
South Carolina. Mr. Johnson, as Ellen was now called,
deemed it most prudent to retire to his berth immediately.
William, fearing this might seem strange to the
other passengers, made a great fuss warming flannels and
opodeldoc at the stove, informing them that his young
master was an invalid travelling to Philadelphia in hopes
of getting cured. He did not tell them the disease was
Slavery; he called it inflammatory rheumatism. The
next morning, at breakfast, Mr. Johnson was seated by
the captain of the boat, and, as his right hand was tied in
a sling, his servant, William, cut up his food for him.
The captain remarked, "You have a very attentive boy,
sir; but I advise you to watch him like a hawk when
you get North. Several gentlemen have lately lost
valuable niggers among them cut-throat Abolitionists."</p>
<p>A hard-looking slave-trader, with red eyes, and bristly<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_186" id="Page_186"></SPAN></span>
beard, was sitting opposite. He laid down a piece of
chicken he was eating, and with his thumbs stuck in the
arm-holes of his waistcoat, said: "I wouldn't take a nigger
North under no consideration. Now, if you'd like
to sell that 'ere boy, I'll pay you for him in silver dollars,
on this 'ere board. What do you say, stranger?"
Mr. Johnson replied, "I do not wish to sell him, sir;
I could not get on well without him." "You'll <i>have</i> to
get on without him, if you take him to the North," continued
the slave-trader. "I am an older cove than you
are, and I reckon I have had more dealings with niggers.
I tell you, stranger, that boy will never do you any good
if you take him across Mason and Dixon's line. I can
see by the cut of his eye that he is bound to run away as
soon as he can get a chance." Mr. Johnson replied, "I
think not, sir. I have great confidence in his fidelity."
Whereupon the slave-trader began to swear about niggers
in general. A military officer, who was also travelling
with a servant, said to Mr. Johnson: "Excuse me,
sir, for saying I think you are likely to spoil that boy of
yours by saying 'thank you' to him. The only way to
make a nigger toe the mark, and to keep him in his
place, is to storm at him like thunder. Don't you see
that when I speak to my Ned, he darts like lightning?
If he didn't, I'd skin him."</p>
<p>When the steamboat arrived at Charleston, the hearts
of the fugitives beat almost loud enough to be heard;
they were so afraid their flight had been discovered, and
a telegraph sent from Savannah to have them arrested.
But they passed unnoticed among the crowd. They took
a carriage and drove to a fashionable hotel, where the
invalid gentleman received every attention befitting his
supposed rank. He was seated at a luxurious table in a<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_187" id="Page_187"></SPAN></span>
brilliant dining-room, while William received some fragments
of food on a broken plate, and was told to go into
the kitchen. Mr. Johnson gave some pieces of money to
the servants who waited upon him; and they said to
William, "Your massa is a big-bug. He is de greatest
gentleman dat has been dis way dis six months."</p>
<p>Notwithstanding the favorable impression he had made,
Mr. Johnson found some difficulty in obtaining tickets to
Philadelphia for himself and his slave. The master of
the ticket-office refused to write the invalid gentleman's
name for him. But the military officer who had breakfasted
with him stepped up and said he knew the gentleman,
and all was right. The captain of the North
Carolina steamer hearing this, and not wishing to lose
a passenger, said, "I will register the gentleman's name,
and take the responsibility upon myself." Mr. Johnson
thanked him politely, and the captain remarked: "No disrespect
was intended to you, sir; but they are obliged to
be very strict in Charleston. Some Abolitionist might
take a valuable nigger along with him, and try to pass
him off as his slave."</p>
<p>They arrived safely at Wilmington, North Carolina,
and took the cars to Richmond, Virginia. On the way,
an elderly lady in the cars, seeing William on the platform,
cried out, in great excitement, "There goes my
nigger Ned!" Mr. Johnson said, very politely, "No,
madam, that is my boy." But the lady, without paying
any attention to what he said, called out, "Ned, you runaway
rascal, come to me, sir." On nearer inspection she
perceived that she was mistaken, and said to Mr. Johnson:
"I beg your pardon, sir. I was sure it was my Ned. I
never saw two black pigs look more alike."</p>
<p>From Petersburg, a Virginia gentleman with two handsome<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_188" id="Page_188"></SPAN></span>
daughters were in the same car with Mr. Johnson.
Supposing him to be a rich, fashionable young Southerner,
they were very attentive and sympathizing. The
old gentleman told him he knew how to pity him, for he
had had inflammatory rheumatism himself. He advised
him to lie down to rest; which he was very willing to do,
as a good means of avoiding conversation. The ladies
took their extra shawls and made a comfortable pillow
for his head, and their father gave him a piece of paper
which he said contained directions for curing the rheumatism.
The invalid thanked him politely; but not knowing
how to read, and fearing he might hold the paper
upside down, prudently put it in his pocket. When they
supposed him to be asleep, one of the ladies said, "Papa,
he seems to be a very nice young gentleman"; and the
other responded, "I never felt so much for any gentleman
in my life."</p>
<p>At parting the Virginian gave him his card and said:
"I hope you will call upon me when you return. I should
be much pleased to see you, and so would my daughters."
He gave ten cents to William, and charged him to be attentive
to his master. This he promised to do, and he
very faithfully kept his word.</p>
<p>They arrived at Baltimore with the joyful feeling that
they were close upon the borders of a Free State. William
saw that his master was comfortably placed in one
of the best cars, and was getting into the servants' car
when a man tapped him on the shoulder and asked where
he was going. William replied humbly, "I am going to
Philadelphia, sir, with my master, who is in the next
car." "Then you had better get him out, and be mighty
quick about it," said the man; "for the train is going to
start, and no man is allowed to take a slave past here till<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_189" id="Page_189"></SPAN></span>
he has satisfied the folks in the office that he has a right
to take him along."</p>
<p>William felt as if he should drop down on the spot;
but he controlled himself, and went and asked his master
to go back to the office. It was a terrible fright. As
Mr. Johnson stepped out he whispered, in great agitation,
"O William, is it possible we shall have to go back to
Slavery, after all we have gone through?" It was very
hard to satisfy the station-master. He said if a man carried
off a slave that did not belong to him, and the rightful
owner could prove that he escaped on that road, they
would be obliged to pay for the slave. Mr. Johnson kept
up a calm appearance, though his heart was in his throat.
"I bought tickets at Charleston to pass us through to
Philadelphia," said he; "therefore you have no right to
detain us here." "Right or no right, we shall not let
you go," replied the man. Some of the spectators sympathized
with the rich young Southerner, and said it was a
pity to detain him when he was so unwell. While the
man hesitated, the bell rang for the cars to start, and the
fugitives were in an agony. "I don't know what to do,"
said the man. "It all seems to be right; and as the
gentleman is so unwell, it is a hard case for him to be
stopped on the way. Clerk, run and tell the conductor
to let this gentleman and his slave pass."</p>
<p>They had scarcely time to scramble into the cars, before
the train started. It was eight o'clock in the evening,
and they expected to arrive in Philadelphia early
the next morning. They did not know that on the
way the passengers would have to leave the cars and
cross the river Susquehanna in a ferry-boat. They had
slept very little for several nights before they left Georgia,
and they had been travelling day and night for four days.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_190" id="Page_190"></SPAN></span>
William, overcome with fatigue, and feeling that their
greatest dangers were now over, fell sound asleep on a
heap of baggage. When they arrived at the ferry, it was
cold, dark, and rainy; and for the first time during their
hazardous journey the invalid found no faithful servant
at hand when the cars stopped. He was in great distress,
fearing that William had been arrested or kidnapped.
He anxiously inquired of the passengers whether they
had seen his boy. There were a good many Northerners
on board, and, supposing his slave had run away, they
rather enjoyed his perplexity. One gruffly replied, "I
am no slave-hunter." Another smiled as he said, "I guess
he is in Philadelphia before now."</p>
<p>When they had crossed the ferry one of the guard
found William still sound asleep on the baggage, which
had been rolled into the boat. He shook him and bawled
out: "Wake up, you boy! Your master has been half
scared to death. He thought you had run away." As
soon as William was enough awake to understand what
had happened, he said, "I am sure my good master does
not think that of me." He hastened to explain to Mr.
Johnson how he happened to be out of the way. He
was received with a great leap of the heart; but the
passengers only thought that the master was very glad
to recover his lost property. Some of them took a convenient
opportunity to advise William to run away when
they reached Philadelphia. He replied, "I shall never
run away from such a good master as I have." They
laughed, and said, "You will think differently when you
get into a Free State." They told him how to proceed in
case he wanted to be free, and he thanked them. A colored
man also entered into conversation with him, and
told him of a certain boarding-house in Philadelphia, the<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_191" id="Page_191"></SPAN></span>
keeper of which was very friendly to slaves who wanted
their freedom.</p>
<p>On Christmas-day, just as morning was about to dawn,
they came in sight of the flickering lights of Philadelphia.
William procured a cab as quick as possible, hurried
their baggage into it, and told the driver to take
them to the boarding-house which had been recommended
to them. While Ellen had been obliged to act the part
of Mr. Johnson, she had kept her mind wonderfully calm
and collected. But now that she was on free soil she
broke down with the excess of her emotions. "Thank
God, William, we are safe, we are safe!" she exclaimed;
and sinking upon her husband's breast, she burst into a
passion of tears. When they arrived at the boarding-house,
she was so faint she had no further occasion to act
being an invalid. As soon as a room was provided, they
entered and fastened the door. Then kneeling down side
by side, folded in each other's arms, with tears flowing
freely, they thanked God for having brought them safely
through their dangerous journey, and having permitted
them to live to see this happy Sabbath day, which was
Christmas-day also.</p>
<p>When they had rested and refreshed themselves with
a wash, Ellen put on her womanly garments and went
to the sitting-room. When the landlord came at their
summons, he was very much surprised and perplexed.
"Where is your master?" inquired he; and when William
pointed to his wife, he thought it was a joke; for he
could not believe she was the same person who came
into the house in the dress of a gentleman. He listened
to their singular story with great interest and sympathy.
He told them he was afraid it would not be safe for them
to remain in Philadelphia, but he would send for some<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_192" id="Page_192"></SPAN></span>
Abolitionists who knew the laws better than he did.
Friends soon came, and gave them a hearty welcome;
but they all agreed that it would not be safe for them to
remain long in Philadelphia, and advised them to go to
Boston. Barclay Ivens, a kind-hearted Quaker farmer,
who lived some distance in the country, invited them to
rest a few weeks at his house. They went accordingly.
But Ellen, who had not been accustomed to receive such
attentions from white people, was a little flurried when
they arrived. She had received the impression that they
were going to stay with colored people; and when she
saw a white lady and three daughters come out to the
wagon to meet her, she was much disturbed, and said to
William, "I thought they were colored people." "It is
all the same as if they were," replied he. "They are
our good friends." "It is <i>not</i> all the same," said Ellen,
decidedly. "I have no faith in white people. They will
be sending us back into Slavery. I am going right off."
She had not then become acquainted with the Abolitionists.
She had heard her master and other Southerners
talk about them as very bad men, who would make slaves
believe they were their friends, and then sell them into
distant countries. The Quaker lady saw that she was
afraid, and she went up to her and took her very kindly
by the hand, saying: "How art thou, my dear? We are
very glad to see thee and thy husband. We have heard
about thy marvellous escape from Slavery. Come in and
warm thyself. I dare say thou art cold and hungry after
thy journey." Ellen thanked her, and allowed herself
to be led into the house. Still she did not feel quite safe
in that strange place, away from all her people. When
Mrs. Ivens attempted to remove her bonnet, she said,
"No, I thank you. I am not going to stop long." "Poor<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_193" id="Page_193"></SPAN></span>
child!" said the good Quaker mother, "I don't wonder
thou art timid. But don't be afraid. Thou art among
friends who would as soon sell their own daughters into
Slavery as betray thee. We would not harm a hair of
thy head for the world." The kindly face and the motherly
tones melted the heart of the poor frightened fugitive,
and the tears began to flow. They stayed several
weeks in that hospitable house, and the son and daughters
took so much pains to teach them to read and write,
that before they left they could spell a little, and write
their names quite legibly. They were strongly urged to
stay longer, and would have done so had they not been
very desirous to be earning their own living. When
they left this excellent family it seemed like parting with
near and dear relatives.</p>
<p>In Boston they were introduced to William Lloyd
Garrison, Wendell Phillips, Francis Jackson, Rev. Theodore
Parker, and other good men, who had for years
been laboring for the emancipation of the slaves. The
fugitives made a favorable impression on strangers at first
sight. They both looked intelligent and honest. William
had a very manly air, and Ellen was modest and
ladylike in her manners.</p>
<p>Their marriage in Georgia had been, like other slave
marriages, without a certificate; therefore they were desirous
to have the ceremony performed again, with all
the forms of law, now that they were in a free land.
They were accordingly married by the Rev. Mr. Parker,
at the house of a respectable colored citizen of Boston,
named Lewis Hayden. Mr. Crafts was employed at his
trade, and his wife obtained work as a seamstress. They
lived in Boston two years, during which time they established
an excellent character by their honest industry and<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_194" id="Page_194"></SPAN></span>
correct deportment. They earned a comfortable living,
and might have laid by some money if circumstances
had permitted them to remain in Massachusetts.</p>
<p>But in 1850 the Congress of the United States, under
the influence of slaveholders, passed a very wicked act
called the Fugitive Slave Bill. There was in Boston at
that time a celebrated lawyer named Daniel Webster.
He wanted to be President of the United States, and for
many years no man had been able to get elected to that
office unless he pleased the slaveholders. He accordingly
used his great influence to help the passage of the
bill, and advised the people of Massachusetts to get over
their scruples about hunting slaves. He died without being
President; and I hope God forgave the great sin into
which his ambition led him. By that cruel act of Congress,
everybody, all over the country, was required to
send back fugitive slaves to their masters. Whoever
concealed them or helped them in any way became
liable to a year's imprisonment and a fine of a thousand
dollars, besides paying the price of the slave. In all the
Northern cities there were many honest, industrious colored
people who had escaped from Slavery years before,
and were now getting a comfortable living. Many of
them had married at the North and reared families.
But when slaveholders gained this victory over the conscience
of the North, they were compelled to leave their
business and their homes, and hide themselves wheresoever
they could. Mr. and Mrs. Crafts had many zealous
friends in Boston, but the friends of the slaveholders
were more numerous. For some time past, Southerners
had been rather reluctant to hunt slaves in Massachusetts,
because the public opinion of the people was
so much opposed to Slavery, that they found it a difficult<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_195" id="Page_195"></SPAN></span>
and disagreeable job. But after the passage of that unrighteous
bill, they and their pro-slavery accomplices at
the North became more bold.</p>
<p>One day, while Mr. Crafts was busy in his shop, he
received a visit from a man by the name of Knight, who
used to work in the same shop with him in Georgia.
He professed to be much pleased to see William again,
and invited him to walk round the streets and show him
the curiosities of Boston. Mr. Crafts told him he had
work to do, and was very busy. The next day he tried
again; but finding Mr. Crafts still too busy to walk
with him, he said: "I wish you would come to see me
at the United States Hotel, and bring your wife with
you. She would like to hear from her mother. If you
want to send letters to Georgia, I will take them for
you." This was followed by a badly spelled note to
Mr. Crafts, informing him that he was going to leave
Boston early the next morning, and if he wanted to send
a letter to Georgia he must bring it to him at the hotel
after tea. Mr. Crafts smiled that he should think him
silly enough to walk into such an open trap. Mr. Knight
had told him that he came to Boston alone; but when he
questioned the hotel-servant who brought the note, he
was told that a Mr. Hughes from Georgia accompanied
him. Mr. Hughes was a notorious slave-catcher, and the
jailer of Macon. Mr. Crafts continued to work at his
shop; but he kept the door locked, and a loaded pistol
beside him.</p>
<p>Finding that his intended victim was too much on his
guard to be caught by trickery, Mr. Hughes applied to
the United States Court in Boston and obtained a warrant
to arrest William and Ellen Crafts as fugitive
slaves. This produced tremendous excitement. The<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_196" id="Page_196"></SPAN></span>
Abolitionists were determined that they should not be
carried back into Slavery. They had people everywhere
on the watch, and employed lawyers to throw all manner
of difficulties in the way of the slave-hunters, whose persons
and manners were described in the newspapers in a
way by no means agreeable to them. The colored people
held large meetings, and passed various spirited resolutions,
among which was the following: "<i>Resolved</i>, Man
wills us slaves, but God wills us free. We will as God
wills. God's will be done." Two hundred of them
armed themselves and vowed that they would defend
William and Ellen Crafts to the death. Mr. Crafts
said very calmly, but very resolutely, that they should
never take him alive. Hughes the slave-catcher swore:
"I'll have 'em if I stay in Boston to all eternity. If
there a'n't men enough in Massachusetts to take 'em, I'll
bring men from Georgia." Merchants in Boston, thinking
only of their trade with the South, sympathized with
those men engaged in such a base calling; and the
United States officials did all they could to help them.
But though they received countenance and aid from
many influential men in Boston, those hirelings of
Slavery could not help feeling ashamed of their business.
They complained that the boys in the streets hooted after
them, and that wherever they made their appearance,
people called out, "There go the slave-hunters!" They
heard that the Abolitionists were preparing to arrest them
and try them as kidnappers; and the number of colored
people who watched their movements with angry looks
made them wish themselves back in Georgia. During
all this commotion, the conduct of Mr. Crafts excited
universal admiration. He was resolute, but very calm.
If there had been any law to protect him, he would have<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_197" id="Page_197"></SPAN></span>
appealed to the law, rather than have harmed a hair of
any man's head; but left defenceless as he was among a
pack of wolves hunting him and his innocent wife, he
was determined to defend his freedom at any cost.</p>
<p>Ellen was secretly conveyed out of the city. Mr. and
Mrs. Ellis Gray Loring of Boston were excellent people,
always kind to the poor and true friends to the oppressed
slaves. They spent their summers in the neighboring
town of Brookline. A Boston physician, who
was an Abolitionist, carried Ellen to their house in the
evening. Mr. and Mrs. Loring were both absent from
home for a few days, but a lady who was staying in the
house received her with great kindness. She stayed
there two days, assisting the lady very industriously and
skilfully with her needle. Her mind was full of anxiety
about her husband, whom she had left in the city exposed
to the most fearful danger. She was very wakeful
through the night, listening to every noise. As soon as
she became drowsy, she would wake with a sudden start
from some bad dream. She dreamed that she and William
were running from the Georgia slave-catcher, and
that Daniel Webster was close behind them, pointing a
pistol at them. It was a sad thing that a man of such
intellectual ability as Mr. Webster, and with so much
influence in society, should make such bad use of his
great power that he haunted the dreams of the poor and
the oppressed. Ellen rose in the morning with a feeling
of weariness and a great load upon her heart. But she
kept back the tears that were ready to flow, and was so
quiet and sweet-tempered that she completely gained the
hearts of her protectors. Early the next evening, the
same friend who carried Ellen from the city brought her
husband to her. He also had been sleepless, and was<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_198" id="Page_198"></SPAN></span>
worn down with fatigue and anxiety. They were advised
to retire to rest immediately, to remain in their
room with the door locked, and be careful not to show
themselves at the window. They followed these directions,
and the lady was hoping they would both have
peaceful and refreshing slumber, when Ellen came to say
that her husband wanted to speak with her. She found
him standing by the fireplace looking very sad, but with
a dignified calmness that seemed to her truly noble in the
midst of such dreadful danger. As she entered he said,
"Ellen has just told me that Mr. and Mrs. Loring are
absent from home. If we should be found in his house,
he would be liable to imprisonment and a heavy fine. It
is wrong for us to expose him to this danger without his
knowledge and consent. We must seek shelter elsewhere."
The lady replied: "Mr. Loring would feel
troubled to have you leave his house under such circumstances.
He is the best and kindest of men, and
a great friend of the colored people." "That makes it
all the more wrong for us to bring him into trouble on
our account, without his knowledge," replied Mr. Crafts.
Ellen had kept up bravely all day, but now her courage
began to fail. She looked up with tears swimming in
her handsome eyes and said: "O William, it is so dark
and rainy to-night, and it seems so safe here! We may
be seen and followed, if we go out. You said you didn't
sleep last night. I started up from a little nap, dreaming
that Daniel Webster was chasing us with a loaded pistol.
I thought of all manner of horrid things that might be
happening to you, and I couldn't sleep any more. Don't
you think we might stay here just this one night?" He
looked at her with pity in his eyes, but said, very firmly,
"Ellen, it wouldn't be right." Without another word<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_199" id="Page_199"></SPAN></span>
she prepared to go, though the tears were falling fast.
The lady, finding his mind too fixed to be changed by her
persuasions, sent a guide with them to the house of Mr.
Philbrick, a worthy, kind-hearted gentleman, who lived
about half a mile off. She herself told me the story;
and she said she never felt so much respect and admiration
for any human beings as she did for those two
hunted slaves when she saw them walk out into the
darkness and rain because they thought it wrong to endanger,
without his consent, a friend of their persecuted
people. She felt anxious lest the slave-catcher or his
agents might seize them on the road, and it was a great
relief to her mind when the guide returned and said Mr.
Philbrick received them gladly.</p>
<p>After a few more days of peril they were secretly put
on board a vessel, which conveyed them to England.
They carried letters which introduced them to good people,
who contributed money to put them to school for a
while. Their intelligence, industry, and good conduct
confirmed the favorable impression made by their first
appearance. In 1860, Mr. Crafts published a little book
giving an account of their "Running a Thousand Miles
for Freedom." They have now been living in England
fifteen years. By their united industry and good management
they earned a comfortable living, and laid by
a little, year after year, until they had enough to buy a
small house in the village of Hammersmith, not far from
the great city of London. There they keep their children
at the best of schools, and pay taxes which help to
support the poor in the country which protected them in
their time of danger and distress.</p>
<p>The honesty, energy, and good sense of Mr. Crafts inspired
so much respect and confidence in England, that<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_200" id="Page_200"></SPAN></span>
the Quakers and other benevolent people, who wish to do
good to Africa, also merchants, who want to open trade
with that region, sent him out there with a valuable cargo
of goods, in November, 1862. The mission he is performing
is very important to the well-being of the world,
as you will see by the following explanation.</p>
<p>Africa is four thousand miles across the Atlantic Ocean
from the United States. It is inhabited by numerous
tribes of black people, each tribe with a separate government.
These tribes vary in degrees of intelligence and
civilization; but they are generally of a peaceable and
kindly disposition, unless greatly provoked by wrongs
from others. Where they are safe from attack they live
in little villages of huts, and raise yams, rice, and other
grain for food. They weave coarse cloth from cotton,
merely by means of sticks stuck in the ground, and in
some places they color it with gay patterns. They make
very pretty baskets and mats from grasses, and some of
the tribes manufacture rude tools of iron and ornaments
of gold. But a constant state of warfare has hindered
the improvement of the Africans; for men have very little
encouragement to build good houses, and make convenient
furniture, and plant grain, if enemies are likely to
come any night and burn and trample it all to the ground.
These continual wars have been largely caused by the
slave-trade. Formerly the African chiefs sold men into
Slavery only in punishment for some crime they had
committed, or to work out a debt they had failed to pay,
or because they were prisoners taken in war. These
customs were barbarous enough, but they were not so
bad as what they were afterward taught to do by nations
calling themselves Christians. In various countries of
Europe and America there were white people too proud<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_201" id="Page_201"></SPAN></span>
and lazy to work, but desirous to dress in the best and
live on the fat of the land. They sent ships out to Africa
to bring them negroes, whom they compelled to work
without wages, with coarse, scanty food, and scarcely
any clothing. They grew rich on the labor of these
poor creatures, and spent their own time in drinking,
gambling, and horse-racing. Slave-traders, in order to
supply them with as many negroes as they wanted, would
steal all the men, women, and children they could catch
on the coast of Africa; and would buy others from the
chiefs, paying them mostly in rum and gunpowder. This
made the different tribes very desirous to go to war with
each other, in order to take prisoners to sell to the slave-traders;
and the more rum they drank, the more full of
fight they were. This mean and cruel business has been
carried on by white men four hundred years; and all that
while African villages have been burned in the night,
and harvests trampled, and men, women, and children
carried off to hopeless Slavery in distant lands. This
continual violence, and intercourse with such bad white
men as the slave-traders, kept the Africans barbarous;
and made them much more barbarous than they would
otherwise have been. Such a state of things made it
impossible for them to improve, as they would have done
if the nations called Christians had sent them spelling-books
and Bibles instead of rum, teachers instead of
slave-traders, and tools and machinery instead of gunpowder.</p>
<p>Of all the African chiefs the King of Dahomey is the
most powerful. He sends armed men all about the country
to carry off people and sell them to Europeans and
Americans. In that bad way he has grown richer than
other chiefs, and more hard-hearted. Benevolent people<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_202" id="Page_202"></SPAN></span>
in England have long desired to stop the ravages of the
slave-trade and to teach the Africans better things. The
dearth of cotton in the United States, occasioned by the
Rebellion of the planters, turned the attention of English
merchants in the same direction. It was accordingly
agreed to send Mr. Crafts to Dahomey to open a trade,
and try to convince the king that it would be more profitable
to him to employ men in raising cotton than to sell
them for slaves. He was well received by the King of
Dahomey, who shows a disposition to be influenced by
his judicious counsels. This is a great satisfaction to Mr.
Crafts, desirous as he is of elevating people of his own
color. Numbers who were destined to be sold into foreign
Slavery are already employed in raising cotton in their
native land. Wars will become less frequent; and the
African tribes will gradually learn that the arts of peace
are more profitable, as well as more pleasant. This will
bring them into communication with a better class of
white men; and I hope that, before another hundred
years have passed away, there will be Christian churches
all over Africa, and school-houses for the children.</p>
<p>Mr. Crafts sold all the goods he carried out in the first
vessel, and managed the business so well that he was sent
out with another cargo. He is now one of the most enterprising
and respected merchants in that part of the world;
and his labors produce better results than mere money,
for they are the means of making men wiser and better.
How much would have been lost to himself and the world
if he had remained a slave in Georgia, not allowed to
profit by his own industry, and forbidden to improve his
mind by learning to read!</p>
<p>Mr. M. D. Conway, the son of a slaveholder in Virginia,
but a very able and zealous friend of the colored<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_203" id="Page_203"></SPAN></span>
people, recently visited England, and sent the following
letter to Boston, where it was read with great interest by
the numerous friends of William and Ellen Crafts:—</p>
<blockquote><p class="quotdate">
"<span class="smcap">London</span>, October 29th, 1864.<br/></p>
<p>"A walk one pleasant morning across a green common,
then through a quiet street of the village called
Hammersmith, brought me to the house of an American
whom I respect as much as any now in Europe; namely,
William Crafts, once a slave in Georgia, then a hunted
fugitive in Massachusetts, but now a respected citizen
of England, and the man who is doing more to redeem
Africa from her cruel superstitions than all other forces
put together. He lately came home from Dahomey, the
ship-load of goods that he had taken out to Africa from
Liverpool having been entirely sold. The merchants
who sent him are preparing another cargo for him, and
he will probably leave the country this week. His
theory is, that commerce is to destroy the abominations
in the realm of Dahomey. He is very black, but he
finds the color which was so much against him in
America a leading advantage to him in Africa. Ellen,
his wife, told us that she was too white to go with him.
He was absent on business in Liverpool, and thus, to my
regret, I missed the opportunity of seeing him. There
was a pretty little girl, and three unusually handsome
boys. They all inherit the light complexion and beauty
of their mother. We found Mrs. Crafts busy packing
her husband's trunk for his next voyage. She showed
us a number of interesting things which he had brought
from Africa. Among them were birds of bright plumage,
a belt worn by the Amazons in war, a sword made by
the Africans, breastpins, and other excellent specimens<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_204" id="Page_204"></SPAN></span>
of work in metals. I remembered that years ago the
sight of similar things inspired Clarkson with his strong
faith in the improvability of the African race.</p>
<p>"William and Ellen Crafts own the house in which
they live. After that brave flight of a thousand miles for
freedom, after the dangers which surrounded them in
Massachusetts, it did my heart good to see them enjoying
their own simple but charming home, to see them thus
living under their own vine and fig-tree, none daring to
molest or make them afraid.</p>
<p class="quotsig">"<span class="smcap">M. D. Conway.</span>"</p>
</blockquote>
<p>Mrs. Crafts has used her needle diligently to make
garments for the colored people of the United States
emancipated by President Lincoln's Proclamation. She
has had the pleasure of hearing that her mother is among
them, healthy, and still young looking for her years. As
soon as arrangements can be made she will go to England
to rejoin her daughter, whom she has not seen since
her hazardous flight from Georgia.</p>
<p>I think all who read this romantic but true story
will agree with me in thinking that few white people
have shown as much intelligence, moral worth, and
refinement of feeling as the fugitive slaves William and
Ellen Crafts.</p>
<hr class="tb" />
<p>In February, 1861, the Emperor of Russia proclaimed freedom
to twenty-three millions of serfs. Finding their freedom
was not secure in the hands of their former masters, he afterward
completed the good work by investing the freedmen with
civil and political rights; including the right to testify in court,
the right to vote, and the right to hold office.</p>
<hr class="chap" /><p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_205" id="Page_205"></SPAN></span></p>
<h2><SPAN name="SPRING" id="SPRING"></SPAN>SPRING.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY GEORGE HORTON.</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Hail, thou auspicious vernal dawn!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Ye birds, proclaim that winter's gone!<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Ye warbling minstrels, sing!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Pour forth your tribute as ye rise,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And thus salute the fragrant skies,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">The pleasing smiles of spring!<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Coo sweetly, O thou harmless dove,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And bid thy mate no longer rove<br/></span>
<span class="i2">In cold hybernal vales!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Let music rise from every tongue,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Whilst winter flies before the song<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Which floats on gentle gales.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Ye frozen streams, dissolve and flow<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Along the valley sweet and slow!<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Divested fields, be gay!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Ye drooping forests, bloom on high,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And raise your branches to the sky;<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And thus your charms display!<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Thou world of heat! thou vital source!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">The torpid insects feel thy force,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Which all with life supplies.<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Gardens and orchards richly bloom,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And send a gale of sweet perfume,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">To invite them as they rise.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_206" id="Page_206"></SPAN></span><br/>
<span class="i0">Near where the crystal waters glide<br/></span>
<span class="i0">The male of birds escorts his bride,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And twitters on the spray;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">He mounts upon his active wing,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">To hail the bounty of the spring,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">The lavish pomp of May.<br/></span></div>
</div>
<h2><SPAN name="THE_GOOD_GRANDMOTHER" id="THE_GOOD_GRANDMOTHER"></SPAN>THE GOOD GRANDMOTHER.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY HARRIET JACOBS.</p>
<p>I had a great treasure in my maternal grandmother,
who was a remarkable woman in many respects.
She was the daughter of a planter in South Carolina,
who, at his death, left her and her mother free, with
money to go to St. Augustine, where they had relatives.
It was during the Revolutionary War, and they were
captured on their passage, carried back, and sold to different
purchasers. Such was the story my grandmother
used to tell me. She was sold to the keeper of a large
hotel, and I have often heard her tell how hard she fared
during childhood. But as she grew older she evinced
so much intelligence, and was so faithful, that her master
and mistress could not help seeing it was for their interest
to take care of such a valuable piece of property.
She became an indispensable person in the household,
officiating in all capacities, from cook and wet-nurse to
seamstress. She was much praised for her cooking; and
her nice crackers became so famous in the neighborhood
that many people were desirous of obtaining them. In<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_207" id="Page_207"></SPAN></span>
consequence of numerous requests of this kind, she asked
permission of her mistress to bake crackers at night, after
all the household work was done; and she obtained leave
to do it, provided she would clothe herself and the children
from the profits. Upon these terms, after working
hard all day for her mistress, she began her midnight
bakings, assisted by her two oldest children. The business
proved profitable; and each year she laid by a little,
to create a fund for the purchase of her children. Her
master died, and his property was divided among the
heirs. My grandmother remained in the service of his
widow, as a slave. Her children were divided among
her master's children; but as she had five, Benjamin, the
youngest, was sold, in order that the heirs might have an
equal portion of dollars and cents. There was so little
difference in our ages, that he always seemed to me more
like a brother than an uncle. He was a bright, handsome
lad, nearly white; for he inherited the complexion
my grandmother had derived from Anglo-Saxon ancestors.
His sale was a terrible blow to his mother; but
she was naturally hopeful, and she went to work with
redoubled energy, trusting in time to be able to purchase
her children. One day, her mistress begged the loan of
three hundred dollars from the little fund she had laid
up from the proceeds of her baking. She promised to
pay her soon; but as no promise or writing given to a
slave is legally binding, she was obliged to trust solely to
her honor.</p>
<p>In my master's house very little attention was paid
to the slaves' meals. If they could catch a bit of food
while it was going, well and good. But I gave myself
no trouble on that score; for on my various errands I
passed my grandmother's house, and she always had<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_208" id="Page_208"></SPAN></span>
something to spare for me. I was frequently threatened
with punishment if I stopped there; and my grandmother,
to avoid detaining me, often stood at the gate with something
for my breakfast or dinner. I was indebted to her
for all my comforts, spiritual or temporal. It was <i>her</i>
labor that supplied my scanty wardrobe. I have a vivid
recollection of the linsey-woolsey dress given me every
winter by Mrs. Flint. How I hated it! It was one of
the badges of Slavery. While my grandmother was thus
helping to support me from her hard earnings, the three
hundred dollars she lent her mistress was never repaid.
When her mistress died, my master, who was her son-in-law,
was appointed executor. When grandmother applied
to him for payment, he said the estate was insolvent, and
the law prohibited payment. It did not, however, prohibit
him from retaining the silver candelabra which
had been purchased with that money. I presume they
will be handed down in the family from generation
to generation.</p>
<p>My grandmother's mistress had always promised that
at her death she should be free; and it was said that in
her will she made good the promise. But when the estate
was settled, Dr. Flint told the faithful old servant that,
under existing circumstances, it was necessary she should
be sold.</p>
<p>On the appointed day the customary advertisement
was posted up, proclaiming that there would be "a public
sale of negroes, horses, &c." Dr. Flint called to tell my
grandmother that he was unwilling to wound her feelings
by putting her up at auction, and that he would prefer
to dispose of her at private sale. She saw through his
hypocrisy, and understood very well that he was ashamed
of the job. She was a very spirited woman; and if he<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_209" id="Page_209"></SPAN></span>
was base enough to sell her, after her mistress had made
her free by her will, she was determined the public should
know it. She had, for a long time, supplied many families
with crackers and preserves; consequently "Aunt
Marthy," as she was called, was generally known; and
all who knew her respected her intelligence and good
character. It was also well known that her mistress had
intended to leave her free, as a reward for her long and
faithful services. When the day of sale came, she took
her place among the chattels, and at the first call she
sprang upon the auction-block. She was then fifty years
old. Many voices called out: "Shame! shame! Who's
going to sell <i>you</i>, Aunt Marthy? Don't stand there.
That's no place for <i>you</i>." She made no answer, but
quietly awaited her fate. No one bid for her. At last
a feeble voice said, "Fifty dollars." It came from a
maiden lady, seventy years old, the sister of my grandmother's
deceased mistress. She had lived forty years
under the same roof with my grandmother; she knew
how faithfully she had served her owners, and how cruelly
she had been defrauded of her rights, and she resolved to
protect her. The auctioneer waited for a higher bid; but
her wishes were respected; no one bid above her. The
old lady could neither read nor write; and when the bill
of sale was made out, she signed it with a cross. But of
what consequence was that, when she had a big heart
overflowing with human kindness? She gave the faithful
old servant her freedom.</p>
<p>My grandmother had always been a mother to her
orphan grandchildren, as far as that was possible in a
condition of Slavery. Her perseverance and unwearied
industry continued unabated after her time was her own,
and she soon became mistress of a snug little home, and<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_210" id="Page_210"></SPAN></span>
surrounded herself with the necessaries of life. She would
have been happy, if her family could have shared them
with her. There remained to her but three children and
two grandchildren; and they were all slaves. Most earnestly
did she strive to make us feel that it was the will of
God; that He had seen fit to place us under such circumstances,
and though it seemed hard, we ought to pray
for contentment. It was a beautiful faith, coming from
a mother who could not call her children her own. But
I and Benjamin, her youngest boy, condemned it. It
appeared to us that it was much more according to the
will of God that we should be free, and able to make a
home for ourselves, as she had done. There we always
found balsam for our troubles. She was so loving, so
sympathizing! She always met us with a smile, and listened
with patience to all our sorrows. She spoke so
hopefully, that unconsciously the clouds gave place to
sunshine. There was a grand big oven there, too, that
baked bread and nice things for the town; and we knew
there was always a choice bit in store for us. But even
the charms of that old oven failed to reconcile us to our
hard lot. Benjamin was now a tall, handsome lad,
strongly and gracefully made, and with a spirit too bold
and daring for a slave.</p>
<p>One day his master attempted to flog him for not obeying
his summons quickly enough. Benjamin resisted, and
in the struggle threw his master down. To raise his hand
against a white man was a great crime, according to the
laws of the State; and to avoid a cruel, public whipping,
Benjamin hid himself and made his escape. My
grandmother was absent, visiting an old friend in the
country, when this happened. When she returned, and
found her youngest child had fled, great was her sorrow.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_211" id="Page_211"></SPAN></span>
But, with characteristic piety, she said, "God's will be
done." Every morning she inquired whether any news
had been heard from her boy. Alas! news did come,—sad
news. The master received a letter, and was rejoicing
over the capture of his human chattel.</p>
<p>That day seems to me but as yesterday, so well do I
remember it. I saw him led through the streets in chains
to jail. His face was ghastly pale, but full of determination.
He had sent some one to his mother's house to ask
her not to come to meet him. He said the sight of her
distress would take from him all self-control. Her heart
yearned to see him, and she went; but she screened herself
in the crowd, that it might be as her child had said.</p>
<p>We were not allowed to visit him. But we had known
the jailer for years, and he was a kind-hearted man. At
midnight he opened the door for my grandmother and
myself to enter, in disguise. When we entered the cell,
not a sound broke the stillness. "Benjamin," whispered
my grandmother. No answer. "Benjamin!" said she,
again, in a faltering tone. There was a jingling of chains.
The moon had just risen, and cast an uncertain light
through the bars. We knelt down and took Benjamin's
cold hands in ours. Sobs alone were heard, while she
wept upon his neck. At last Benjamin's lips were unsealed.
Mother and son talked together. He asked her
pardon for the suffering he had caused her. She told
him she had nothing to forgive; that she could not blame
him for wanting to be free. He told her that he broke
away from his captors, and was about to throw himself
into the river, but thoughts of her came over him and
arrested the movement. She asked him if he did not
also think of God. He replied: "No, mother, I did not.
When a man is hunted like a wild beast, he forgets that
there <i>is</i> a God."</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_212" id="Page_212"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>The pious mother shuddered, as she said: "Don't talk
so, Benjamin. Try to be humble, and put your trust in
God."</p>
<p>"I wish I had some of your goodness," he replied.
"You bear everything patiently, just as though you
thought it was all right. I wish I could."</p>
<p>She told him it had not always been so with her; that
once she was like him; but when sore troubles came upon
her, and she had no arm to lean upon, she learned to
call on God, and he lightened her burdens. She besought
him to do so likewise.</p>
<p>The jailer came to tell us we had overstayed our time,
and we were obliged to hurry away. Grandmother went
to the master and tried to intercede for her son. But he
was inexorable. He said Benjamin should be made an
example of. That he should be kept in jail till he was
sold. For three months he remained within the walls of
the prison, during which time grandmother secretly conveyed
him changes of clothes, and as often as possible
carried him something warm for supper, accompanied
with some little luxury for her friend the jailer. He
was finally sold to a slave-trader from New Orleans.
When they fastened irons upon his wrists to drive him
off with the coffle, it was heart-rending to hear the groans
of that poor mother, as she clung to the Benjamin of her
family,—her youngest, her pet. He was pale and thin
now, from hardships and long confinement; but still his
good looks were so observable that the slave-trader remarked
he would give any price for the handsome lad,
if he were a girl. We, who knew so well what Slavery
was, were thankful that he was not.</p>
<p>Grandmother stifled her grief, and with strong arms
and unwavering faith set to work to purchase freedom<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_213" id="Page_213"></SPAN></span>
for Benjamin. She knew the slave-trader would charge
three times as much as he gave for him; but she was not
discouraged. She employed a lawyer to write to New
Orleans, and try to negotiate the business for her. But
word came that Benjamin was missing; he had run away
again.</p>
<p>Philip, my grandmother's only remaining son, inherited
his mother's intelligence. His mistress sometimes trusted
him to go with a cargo to New York. One of these occasions
occurred not long after Benjamin's second escape.
Through God's good providence the brothers met in the
streets of New York. It was a happy meeting, though
Benjamin was very pale and thin; for on his way from
bondage he had been taken violently ill, and brought nigh
unto death. Eagerly he embraced his brother, exclaiming:
"O Phil! here I am at last. I came nigh dying
when I was almost in sight of freedom; and O how I
prayed that I might live just to get one breath of free
air! And here I am. In the old jail, I used to wish I
was dead. But life is worth something now, and it would
be hard to die." He begged his brother not to go back
to the South, but to stay and work with him till they
earned enough to buy their relatives.</p>
<p>Philip replied: "It would kill mother if I deserted her.
She has pledged her house, and is working harder than
ever to buy you. Will you be bought?"</p>
<p>"Never!" replied Benjamin, in his resolute tone.
"When I have got so far out of their clutches, do you
suppose, Phil, that I would ever let them be paid one
red cent? Do you think I would consent to have mother
turned out of her hard-earned home in her old age? And
she never to see me after she had bought me? For you
know, Phil, she would never leave the South while any<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_214" id="Page_214"></SPAN></span>
of her children or grandchildren remained in Slavery.
What a good mother! Tell her to buy <i>you</i>, Phil. You
have always been a comfort to her; and I have always
been making her trouble."</p>
<p>Philip furnished his brother with some clothes, and
gave him what money he had. Benjamin pressed his
hand, and said, with moistened eyes, "I part from all my
kindred." And so it proved. We never heard from him
afterwards.</p>
<p>When Uncle Philip came home, the first words he said,
on entering the house, were: "O mother, Ben is free!
I have seen him in New York." For a moment she
seemed bewildered. He laid his hand gently on her
shoulder and repeated what he had said. She raised
her hands devoutly, and exclaimed, "God be praised!
Let us thank Him." She dropped on her knees and
poured forth her heart in prayer. When she grew calmer,
she begged Philip to sit down and repeat every word her
son had said. He told her all, except that Benjamin had
nearly died on the way and was looking very pale and
thin.</p>
<p>Still the brave old woman toiled on to accomplish the
rescue of her remaining children. After a while she
succeeded in buying Philip, for whom she paid eight
hundred dollars, and came home with the precious document
that secured his freedom. The happy mother and
son sat by her hearthstone that night, telling how proud
they were of each other, and how they would prove to
the world that they could take care of themselves, as they
had long taken care of others. We all concluded by saying,
"He that is <i>willing</i> to be a slave, let him be a slave."</p>
<p>My grandmother had still one daughter remaining in
Slavery. She belonged to the same master that I did;<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_215" id="Page_215"></SPAN></span>
and a hard time she had of it. She was a good soul, this
old Aunt Nancy. She did all she could to supply the
place of my lost mother to us orphans. She was the
<i>factotum</i> in our master's household. She was house-keeper,
waiting-maid, and everything else: nothing went
on well without her, by day or by night. She wore herself
out in their service. Grandmother toiled on, hoping
to purchase release for her. But one evening word was
brought that she had been suddenly attacked with paralysis,
and grandmother hastened to her bedside. Mother
and daughter had always been devotedly attached to
each other; and now they looked lovingly and earnestly
into each other's eyes, longing to speak of secrets that
weighed on the hearts of both. She lived but two days,
and on the last day she was speechless. It was sad to
witness the grief of her bereaved mother. She had
always been strong to bear, and religious faith still supported
her; but her dark life had become still darker,
and age and trouble were leaving deep traces on her
withered face. The poor old back was fitted to its burden.
It bent under it, but did not break.</p>
<p>Uncle Philip asked permission to bury his sister at his
own expense; and slaveholders are always ready to
grant <i>such</i> favors to slaves and their relatives. The
arrangements were very plain, but perfectly respectable.
It was talked of by the slaves as a mighty grand funeral.
If Northern travellers had been passing through the
place, perhaps they would have described it as a beautiful
tribute to the humble dead, a touching proof of the
attachment between slaveholders and their slaves; and
very likely the mistress would have confirmed this impression,
with her handkerchief at her eyes. <i>We</i> could
have told them how the poor old mother had toiled, year<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_216" id="Page_216"></SPAN></span>
after year, to buy her son Philip's right to his own earnings;
and how that same Philip had paid the expenses
of the funeral which they regarded as doing so much
credit to the master.</p>
<p>There were some redeeming features in our hard destiny.
Very pleasant are my recollections of the good
old lady who paid fifty dollars for the purpose of making
my grandmother free, when she stood on the auction-block.
She loved this old lady, whom we all called
Miss Fanny. She often took tea at grandmother's
house. On such occasions, the table was spread with a
snow-white cloth, and the china cups and silver spoons
were taken from the old-fashioned buffet. There were
hot muffins, tea-rusks, and delicious sweetmeats. My
grandmother always had a supply of such articles, because
she furnished the ladies of the town with such
things for their parties. She kept two cows for that
purpose, and the fresh cream was Miss Fanny's delight.
She invariably repeated that it was the very best in
town. The old ladies had cosey times together. They
would work and chat, and sometimes, while talking over
old times, their spectacles would get dim with tears, and
would have to be taken off and wiped. When Miss
Fanny bade us "Good by," her bag was always filled
with grandmother's best cakes, and she was urged to
come again soon.</p>
<p>[Here follows a long account of persecutions endured
by the granddaughter, who tells this story. She finally
made her escape, after encountering great dangers and
hardships. The faithful old grandmother concealed her
for a long time at great risk to them both, during which
time she tried in vain to buy free papers for her. At
last there came a chance to escape in a vessel Northward
bound. She goes on to say:—]</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_217" id="Page_217"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>"All arrangements were made for me to go on board at
dusk. Grandmother came to me with a small bag of
money, which she wanted me to take. I begged her to
keep at least part of it; but she insisted, while her tears
fell fast, that I should take the whole. 'You may be
sick among strangers,' said she; 'and they would send
you to the poor-house to die.' Ah, that good grandmother!
Though I had the blessed prospect of freedom
before me, I felt dreadfully sad at leaving forever that
old homestead, that had received and sheltered me in so
many sorrows. Grandmother took me by the hand and
said, 'My child, let us pray.' We knelt down together,
with my arm clasped round the faithful, loving old
friend I was about to leave forever. On no other occasion
has it been my lot to listen to so fervent a supplication
for mercy and protection. It thrilled through my
heart and inspired me with trust in God. I staggered
into the street, faint in body, though strong of purpose.
I did not look back upon the dear old place, though I
felt that I should never see it again."</p>
<p>[The granddaughter found friends at the North, and,
being uncommonly quick in her perceptions, she soon did
much to supply the deficiencies of early education.
While leading a worthy, industrious life in New York,
she twice very narrowly escaped becoming a victim to
the infamous Fugitive Slave Law. A noble-hearted
lady purchased her freedom, and thereby rescued her
from further danger. She thus closes the story of her
venerable ancestor:—]</p>
<p>"My grandmother lived to rejoice in the knowledge of
my freedom; but not long afterward a letter came to me
with a black seal. It was from a friend at the South,
who informed me that she had gone 'where the wicked<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_218" id="Page_218"></SPAN></span>
cease from troubling, and where the weary are at rest.'
Among the gloomy recollections of my life in bondage
come tender memories of that good grandmother, like a
few fleecy clouds floating over a dark and troubled sea."</p>
<p class="cit">H. J.<br/></p>
<p><span class="smcap">Note.</span>—The above account is no fiction. The author,
who was thirty years in Slavery, wrote it in an interesting
book entitled "Linda." She is an esteemed friend
of mine; and I introduce this portion of her story here
to illustrate the power of character over circumstances.
She has intense sympathy for those who are still suffering
in the bondage from which she escaped. She has
devoted all her energies to the poor refugees in our
camps, comforting the afflicted, nursing the sick, and
teaching the children. On the 1st of January, 1863,
she wrote me a letter, which began as follows: "I have
lived to hear the Proclamation of Freedom for my suffering
people. All my wrongs are forgiven. I am more
than repaid for all I have endured. Glory to God in
the highest!"</p>
<p class="cit"><span class="smcap">L. M. Child.</span><br/></p>
<hr class="tb" />
<p class="center">"THEY CANNOT TAKE CARE OF THEMSELVES."</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Our tobacco they plant, and our cotton they pick,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And our rice they can harvest and thrash;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">They feed us in health, and they nurse us when sick,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And they earn—while we pocket—our cash.<br/></span>
<span class="i0">They lead us when young, and they help us when old,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And their toil loads our tables and shelves;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">But they're "niggers"; and <i>therefore</i> (the truth must be told)<br/></span>
<span class="i2">They cannot take care of <i>themselves</i>.</span></div>
<p class="cit"><span class="smcap">Rev. John Pierpont.</span><br/></p>
<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_219" id="Page_219"></SPAN></span></div>
<h2><SPAN name="THE_COLORED_MOTHERS_PRAYER" id="THE_COLORED_MOTHERS_PRAYER"></SPAN>THE COLORED MOTHER'S PRAYER.</h2>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Great Father! who created all,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">The colored and the fair,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">O listen to a mother's call;<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Hear Thou the negro's prayer!<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Yet once again thy people teach,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">With lessons from above,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">That they may <i>practise</i> what they <i>preach</i>,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And <i>all</i> their neighbors love.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Again the Gospel precepts give;<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Teach them this rule to know,—<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Such treatment as ye should <i>receive</i>,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Be willing to <i>bestow</i>.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Then my poor child, my darling one,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Will never feel the smart<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Of their unjust and cruel scorn,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">That withers all the heart.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Great Father! who created all,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">The colored and the fair,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">O listen to a mother's call;<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Hear Thou the negro's prayer!<br/></span></div>
<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_220" id="Page_220"></SPAN></span></div>
<h2><SPAN name="WILLIAM_COSTIN" id="WILLIAM_COSTIN"></SPAN>WILLIAM COSTIN.</h2>
<p>Mr. William Costin was for twenty-four
years porter of a bank in Washington, D. C.
Many millions of dollars passed through his hands, but not
a cent was ever missing, through fraud or carelessness. In
his daily life he set an example of purity and benevolence.
He adopted four orphan children into his family, and
treated them with the kindness of a father. His character
inspired general respect; and when he died, in 1842, the
newspapers of the city made honorable mention of him.
The directors of the bank passed a resolution expressive
of their high appreciation of his services, and his coffin
was followed to the grave by a very large procession of
citizens of all classes and complexions. Not long after,
when the Honorable John Quincy Adams was speaking
in Congress on the subject of voting, he said: "The
late William Costin, though he was not white, was as
much respected as any man in the District; and the large
concourse of citizens that attended his remains to the
grave—as well white as black—was an evidence of the
manner in which he was estimated by the citizens of
Washington. Now, why should such a man as that be
excluded from the elective franchise, when you admit the
vilest individuals of the white race to exercise it?"</p>
<hr class="tb" />
<p>Strain every nerve, wrestle with every power God and
nature have put into your hands, for your place among the
races of this Western world.—<span class="smcap">Wendell Phillips</span>.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_221" id="Page_221"></SPAN></span></p>
<h2><SPAN name="EDUCATION_OF_CHILDREN" id="EDUCATION_OF_CHILDREN"></SPAN>EDUCATION OF CHILDREN.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY L. MARIA CHILD.</p>
<p>People of all colors and conditions love their offspring;
but very few consider sufficiently how
much the future character and happiness of their children
depend on their own daily language and habits. It
does very little good to teach children to be honest if the
person who teaches them is not scrupulous about taking
other people's property or using it without leave. It
does very little good to tell them they ought to be
modest, if they are accustomed to hear their elders use
unclean words or tell indecent stories. Primers and
catechisms may teach them to reverence God, but the
lesson will lose half its effect if they habitually hear their
parents curse and swear. Some two hundred years ago
a very learned astronomer named Sir Isaac Newton
lived in England. He was so devout that he always
took off his hat when the name of God was mentioned.
By that act of reverence he taught a religious lesson to
every child who witnessed it. Young souls are fed by
what they see and hear, just as their bodies are fed with
daily food. No parents who knew what they were doing
would give their little ones poisonous food, that would
produce fevers, ulcers, and death. It is of far more
consequence not to poison their souls; for the body
passes away, but the soul is immortal.</p>
<p>When a traveller pointed to a stunted and crooked
tree and asked what made it grow so, a child replied,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_222" id="Page_222"></SPAN></span>
"I suppose somebody trod on it when it was little." It
is hard for children born in Slavery to grow up spiritually
straight and healthy, because they are trodden on
when they are little. Being constantly treated unjustly,
they cannot learn to be just. Their parents have no
power to protect them from evil influences. They cannot
prevent their continually seeing cruel and indecent
actions, and hearing profane and dirty words. Heretofore,
you could not educate your children, either morally
or intellectually. But now that you are freemen, responsibility
rests upon you. You will be answerable
before God for the influence you exert over the young
souls intrusted to your care. You may be too ignorant
to teach them much of book-learning, and you may be too
poor to spend much money for their education, but you
can set them a pure and good example by your conduct
and conversation. This you should try your utmost to
do, and should pray to the Heavenly Father to help you;
for it is a very solemn duty, this rearing of young souls
for eternity. That you yourselves have had a stunted
growth, from being trodden upon when you were little,
will doubtless make you more careful not to tread upon
them.</p>
<p>It is necessary that children should be made obedient
to their elders, because they are not old enough to know
what is good for themselves; but obedience should always
be obtained by the gentlest means possible. Violence
excites anger and hatred, without doing any good to
counterbalance the evil. When it is necessary to punish
a child, it should be done in such a calm and reasonable
manner as to convince him that you do it for his good,
and not because you are in a rage.</p>
<p>Slaves, all the world over, are generally much addicted<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_223" id="Page_223"></SPAN></span>
to lying. The reason is, that if they have done any mischief
by carelessness or accident, they dare not tell the
truth about it for fear of a cruel flogging. Violent and
tyrannical treatment always produces that effect. Wherever
children are abused, whether they are white or
black, they become very cunning and deceitful; for when
the weak are tortured by the strong, they have no other
way to save themselves from suffering. Such treatment
does not cure faults; it only makes people lie to conceal
their faults. If a child does anything wrong, and confesses
it frankly, his punishment ought to be slight, in order to
encourage him in habits of truthfulness, which is one of
the noblest attributes of manhood. If he commits the
same fault a second time, even if he confesses it, he
ought not to be let off so easily, because it is necessary
to teach him that confession, though a very good thing,
will not supply the place of repentance. When children
are naughty, it is better to deprive them of some pleasant
thing that they want to eat or drink or do, than it is
to kick and cuff them. It is better to attract them
toward what is right than to drive them from what is
wrong. Thus if a boy is lazy, it is wiser to promise him
reward in proportion to his industry, than it is to cuff
and scold him, which will only make him shirk work as
soon as you are out of sight. Whereas, if you tell him,
"You shall have six cents if you dig one bushel of
potatoes, and six cents more if you dig two," he will
have a motive that will stimulate him when you are not
looking after him. If he is too lazy to be stimulated by
such offers, he must be told that he who digs no potatoes
must have none to eat.</p>
<p>The moral education which you are all the time giving
your children, by what they hear you say and see you do,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_224" id="Page_224"></SPAN></span>
is of more consequence to them than reading and writing
and ciphering. But the education they get at school is
also very important; and it will be wise and kind in you
to buy such books as they need, and encourage them in
every way to become good scholars, as well as good men.
By so doing you will not only benefit them, but you will
help all your race. Every colored man or woman who
is virtuous and intelligent takes away something of prejudice
against colored men and women in general; and
it likewise encourages all their brethren and sisters, by
showing what colored people are capable of doing.</p>
<p>The system of Slavery was all penalty and no attraction;
in other words, it punished men if they did <i>not</i> do,
but it did not reward them for <i>doing</i>. In the management
of your children you should do exactly the opposite
of this. You should appeal to their manhood, not to their
fears. After emancipation in the West Indies, planters
who had been violent slaveholders, if they saw a freedman
leaning on his hoe, would say, "Work, you black
rascal, or I'll flog you"; and the freedman would lean
all the longer on his hoe. Planters of a more wise and
moderate character, if they saw the emancipated laborers
idling away their time, would say, "We expect better
things of free men"; and that appeal to their manhood
made the hoes fly fast.</p>
<p>Old men and women have been treated with neglect
and contempt in Slavery, because they were no longer
able to work for the profit of their masters. But respect
and tenderness are peculiarly due to the aged. They
have done much and suffered much. They are no longer
able to help themselves; and we should help them, as
they helped us in the feebleness of our infancy, and as
we may again need to be helped in the feebleness of age.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_225" id="Page_225"></SPAN></span>
Any want of kindness or civility toward the old ought
to be very seriously rebuked in children; and affectionate
attentions should be spoken of as praiseworthy.</p>
<p>Slavery in every way fosters violence. Slave-children,
being in the habit of seeing a great deal of beating, early
form the habit of kicking and banging each other when
they are angry, and of abusing poor helpless animals
intrusted to their care. On all such occasions parents
should say to them: "Those are the ways of Slavery.
We expect better things of free children."</p>
<hr class="tb" />
<p class="center">AN HONORABLE RECORD.</p>
<p>In 1837 the colored population in Philadelphia numbered
eighteen thousand seven hundred and sixty-eight. Many of
them were poor and ignorant, and some of them were vicious;
as would be the case with any people under such discouraging
influences. But, notwithstanding they were excluded by
prejudice from all the most profitable branches of industry,
they had acquired property valued at one million three hundred
and fifty thousand dollars; five hundred and fifty thousand
was in real estate, and eight hundred thousand was
personal property. They had built sixteen churches, valued
at one hundred and fourteen thousand dollars, for the support
of which they annually paid over six thousand dollars. The
pauper tax they paid was more than enough to support all the
colored paupers in the city. They had eighty benevolent
societies, and during that year they had expended fourteen
thousand one hundred and seventy-two dollars for the relief
of the sick and the helpless. A number of them who had
been slaves had paid, in the course of that year, seventy thousand
seven hundred and thirty-three dollars to purchase their
own freedom, or that of their relatives.</p>
<hr class="chap" /><p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_226" id="Page_226"></SPAN></span></p>
<h2><SPAN name="THANK_GOD_FOR_LITTLE_CHILDREN" id="THANK_GOD_FOR_LITTLE_CHILDREN"></SPAN>THANK GOD FOR LITTLE CHILDREN.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY FRANCES E. W. HARPER.</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Thank God for little children!<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Bright flowers by earth's wayside,—<br/></span>
<span class="i0">The dancing, joyous life-boats<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Upon life's stormy tide.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Thank God for little children!<br/></span>
<span class="i2">When our skies are cold and gray,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">They come as sunshine to our hearts,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And charm our cares away.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">I almost think the angels,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Who tend life's garden fair,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Drop down the sweet wild blossoms<br/></span>
<span class="i2">That bloom around us here.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">It seems a breath of heaven<br/></span>
<span class="i2">"Round many a cradle lies,"<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And every little baby<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Brings a message from the skies.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">The humblest home, with children,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Is rich in precious gems;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Better than wealth of monarchs,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Or golden diadems.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Dear mothers, guard these jewels<br/></span>
<span class="i2">As sacred offerings meet,—<br/></span>
<span class="i0">A wealth of household treasures,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">To lay at Jesus' feet.<br/></span></div>
<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_227" id="Page_227"></SPAN></span></div>
<h2><SPAN name="SAM_AND_ANDY" id="SAM_AND_ANDY"></SPAN>SAM AND ANDY.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY HARRIET BEECHER STOWE.</p>
<p>A beautiful slave in Kentucky, named Eliza,
had a very handsome little boy. One day she overheard
her master making a bargain with a slave-trader
by the name of Haley to sell them both. She made her
escape that night, taking her child with her. Her mistress,
who was much attached to her, and did not want
to have her sold, was glad when she heard that Eliza
was gone; but her master, who was afraid the trader
would think he had helped her off after he had taken
the money for her, ordered the horses Bill and Jerry to
be brought, and two of his slaves, called Sam and Andy,
to go with the slave-trader in pursuit of the fugitive. The
way they contrived how <i>not</i> to overtake Eliza is thus told
in "Uncle Tom's Cabin":—</p>
<p>"'Sam! Halloo, Sam!' said Andy. 'Mas'r wants you
to cotch Bill and Jerry.'</p>
<p>"'High! what's afoot now?' said Sam.</p>
<p>"'Why I s'pose you don't know that Lizy's cut stick,
and clared out, with her young un?'</p>
<p>"'You teach your granny!' replied Sam, with infinite
contempt; 'knowed it a heap sooner than <i>you</i> did. This
nigger a'n't so green, now.'</p>
<p>"'Wal, anyhow, Mas'r wants Bill and Jerry geared
right up; and you and I's to go with Mas'r Haley, to look
arter her,' said Andy.</p>
<p>"Sam, who had just been contriving how he could make<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_228" id="Page_228"></SPAN></span>
himself of importance on the plantation, exclaimed: 'Good,
now! dat's de time o' day! It's Sam dat's called for in
dese yere times. <i>He</i>'s de nigger. Mas'r'll see what
Sam can do!'</p>
<p>"'Ah, you'd better think twice,' said Andy; 'for Missis
don't want her cotched, and she'll be in yer wool.'</p>
<p>"'High! how you know dat?' said Sam, opening his
eyes.</p>
<p>"'Heard her say so, my own self, dis blessed mornin',
when I bring in Mas'r's shaving-water. She sent me to
see why Lizy didn't come to dress her; and when I
telled her she was off, she jes ris up, and ses she, "The
Lord be praised!" Mas'r he seemed rael mad; and ses
he, "Wife, you talk like a fool." But, Lor! she'll bring
him to. I knows well enough how that'll be. It's allers
best to stand Missis's side the fence, now I tell yer,' said
Andy.</p>
<p>"Sam scratched his woolly pate, and gave a hitch to
his pantaloons, as he had a habit of doing when his mind
was perplexed. 'Der a'n't never no sayin' 'bout no kind
o' thing in dis yere world,' said he at last. 'Now I'd a
said sartin that Missis would a scoured the varsal world
after Lizy.'</p>
<p>"'So she would,' said Andy; 'but can't ye see through
a ladder, ye black nigger? Missis don't want dis yer
Mas'r Haley to get Lizy's boy; dat's de go. And I
'specs you'd better be making tracks for dem hosses,—mighty
sudden too,—for I hearn Missis 'quirin' arter
yer; so you've stood foolin' long enough.'</p>
<p>"Sam, upon this, began to bestir himself in earnest,
and after a while appeared, bearing down gloriously towards
the house, with Bill and Jerry in a full canter.
Adroitly throwing himself off before they had any idea<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_229" id="Page_229"></SPAN></span>
of stopping, he brought them up alongside the horse-post
like a tornado. Haley's horse, which was a skittish young
colt, winced and bounced, and pulled hard at his halter.</p>
<p>"'Ho! ho!' said Sam, 'skeery, ar ye?' and his black
face lighted up with a curious, mischievous gleam. 'I'll
fix ye now,' said he.</p>
<p>"There was a large beech-tree overshadowing the
place, and the small, sharp, triangular beech-nuts lay
scattered thickly on the ground. Sam stroked and patted
the colt, and while pretending to adjust the saddle, he
slipped under it a sharp little nut, in such a manner that
the least weight brought upon the saddle would annoy the
nervous animal, without leaving any perceptible wound.</p>
<p>"'Dar, me fix 'em,' said he, rolling his eyes with an
approving grin.</p>
<p>"At this moment Mrs. Shelby appeared on the balcony
and beckoned to him. 'Why have you been loitering so,
Sam?' said she. 'I sent Andy to tell you to hurry.'</p>
<p>"'Bress you, Missis, hosses won't be cotched all in a
minit. They done clared out down to the south pasture,
and everywhar,' said Sam.</p>
<p>"'Well, Sam,' replied his mistress, 'you are to go with
Mr. Haley to show him the road, and help him. Be careful
of the horses, Sam. You know Jerry was a little lame
last week. <i>Don't ride them too fast.</i>' She spoke the last
words in a low voice, and with strong emphasis.</p>
<p>"'Let dis chile alone for dat,' said Sam, rolling up his
eyes with a look full of meaning. 'Yes, Missis, I'll look
out for de hosses.'</p>
<p>"Sam returned to his stand under the beech-tree, and
said to Andy, 'Now, Andy, I wouldn't be 't all surprised
if dat ar gen'lman's crittur should gib a fling, by and by,
when he comes to be a gettin' up. You know, Andy,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_230" id="Page_230"></SPAN></span>
critturs <i>will</i> do such things'; and Sam poked Andy in
the side, in a highly suggestive manner.</p>
<p>"'High!' exclaimed Andy, with an air that showed he
understood instantly.</p>
<p>"'Yes, you see, Andy, Missis wants to make time,'
said Sam; 'dat ar's cl'ar to der most or'nary 'bserver.
I jis make a little for her. Now, you see, get all dese
yere hosses loose, caperin' permiscus round dis yere lot,
and down to de wood dar, and I 'spec Mas'r won't be off
in a hurry.'</p>
<p>"Andy grinned.</p>
<p>"'You see, Andy,' said Sam, 'if any such thing should
happen as that Mas'r Haley's hoss <i>should</i> begin to act
contrary, and cut up, you and I jist lets go of <i>our'n</i> to
help him! O yes, we'll <i>help</i> him!' And Sam and Andy
laid their heads back on their shoulders, and broke into
a low, immoderate laugh, snapping their fingers, and
flourishing their heels with exquisite delight.</p>
<p>"While they were enjoying themselves in this style,
Haley appeared on the verandah. Some cups of very
good coffee had somewhat mollified him, and he came out
smiling and talking in tolerably restored humor. Sam
and Andy clawed for their torn hats, and flew to the
horse-posts to be ready to 'help Mas'r.' The brim of
Sam's hat was all unbraided, and the slivers of the palm-leaf
started apart in every direction, giving it a blazing
air of freedom and defiance. The brim had gone entirely
from Andy's hat; but he thumped the crown on his head,
and looked about well pleased, as if to ask, 'Who says I
haven't got a hat?'</p>
<p>"'Well, boys,' said Haley, 'be alive now. We must
lose no time.'</p>
<p>"'Not a bit of him, Mas'r,' said Sam, putting Haley's<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_231" id="Page_231"></SPAN></span>
rein into his hand and holding his stirrup, while Andy
was untying the other two horses.</p>
<p>"The instant Haley touched the saddle the mettlesome
creature bounded from the earth with a sudden spring,
that threw his master sprawling some feet off, on the dry,
soft turf. With frantic ejaculations Sam made a dive at
the reins, but only succeeded in brushing the torn slivers
of his hat into the horse's eyes, which by no means tended
to allay the confusion of his nerves. With two or three
contemptuous snorts he upset Sam, flourished his heels
vigorously in the air, and pranced away toward the lower
end of the lawn. He was followed by Bill and Jerry,
whom Andy had not failed to let loose, according to contract,
speeding them off with various direful cries. And
now there was a scene of great confusion. Sam and
Andy ran and shouted; dogs ran barking here and there;
Mike, Mose, Mandy, Fanny, and all the smaller specimens
on the place, raced, whooped, shouted, and clapped
their hands with outrageous zeal. Haley's fleet horse
entered into the spirit of the scene with great gusto. He
raced round the lawn, which was half a mile in extent,
and seemed to take a mischievous delight in letting his
pursuers come within a hand's breadth of him, and then
whisking off again with a start and a snort.</p>
<p>"Sam's torn hat was seen everywhere. If there seemed
to be the least chance that a horse could be caught, down
he bore upon him full tilt, shouting, 'Now for it! Cotch
him! cotch him!' in a way that set them all to racing
again.</p>
<p>"Haley ran up and down, stamped, cursed, and swore.
The master in vain tried to give some directions from the
balcony, and the mistress looked from her chamber window
and laughed. She had some suspicion that Sam
was the cause of all this confusion.</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_232" id="Page_232"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>"At last, about twelve o'clock, Sam appeared, mounted
on Jerry, leading Haley's horse, reeking with sweat, but
with flashing eyes and dilated nostrils, showing that the
spirit of freedom had not yet entirely subsided.</p>
<p>"'He's cotched!' exclaimed Sam, triumphantly. 'If
it hadn't been for me they might a bust themselves, all
on 'em; but I cotched him.'</p>
<p>"'<i>You!</i>' growled Haley. 'If it hadn't been for <i>you</i>,
this never would have happened.'</p>
<p>"'Bress us, Mas'r!' exclaimed Sam; 'when it's me
that's been a racin' and chasin' till the swet jist pours off
me.'</p>
<p>"'Well, well!' said Haley, 'you've lost me near three
hours with your cursed nonsense. Now let's be off, and
have no more fooling.'</p>
<p>"'Why, Mas'r,' said Sam, in a deprecating tone, 'I do
believe you mean to kill us all clar,—hosses and all.
Here we are all jist ready to drop down, and the critturs
all in a reek o' sweat. Sure Mas'r won't think of startin'
now till arter dinner. Mas'r's hoss wants rubben down.
See how he's splashed hisself!—and Jerry limps, too.
Don't think Missis would be willing to have us start dis
yere way, no how. Bress you, Mas'r, we can ketch up,
if we stop. Lizy nebber was no great of a walker.'</p>
<p>"The mistress, who, greatly to her amusement, overheard
this conversation from the verandah, now came
forward and courteously urged Mr. Haley to stay to dinner,
saying that the cook should bring it on the table
immediately. All things considered, the slave-trader concluded
it was best to do so. As he moved toward the
parlor, Sam rolled his eyes after him with unutterable
meaning, and gravely led the horses to the stable.</p>
<p>"When he had fairly got beyond the shelter of the<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_233" id="Page_233"></SPAN></span>
barn, and fastened the horse to a post, he exclaimed,
'Did you see him, Andy? <i>Did</i> yer see him? O Lor',
if it warn't as good as a meetin', now, to see him a dancin'
and a kickin', and swarin' at us! Didn't I hear him?
Swar away, ole fellow! says I to myself. Will you have
yer hoss now, or wait till you cotch him? says I.' And
Sam and Andy leaned up against the barn, and laughed
to their hearts' content.</p>
<p>"'Yer oughter seen how mad he looked when I brought
the hoss up. Lor', he'd a killed me if he durs' to; and
there I was a standin' as innercent and humble.'</p>
<p>"'Lor', I seed you,' said Andy. 'A'n't you an old
hoss, Sam?'</p>
<p>"'Rather 'specs I am,' said Sam. 'Did you see Missus
up stars at the winder? I seed her laughin'.'</p>
<p>"'I'm sure I was racin' so I didn't see nothin,' said
Andy.</p>
<p>"'Wal, yer see, I'se 'quired a habit o' bobservation,'
said Sam. 'It's a very 'portant habit, Andy; and I
'commend yer to be cultivatin' it, now yer young. Bobservation
makes all de difference in niggers. Didn't I
see what Missis wanted, though she never let on? Dat
ar's bobservation, Andy. I 'specs it's what yer may
call a faculty. Faculties is different in different peoples;
but cultivation of 'em goes a great way.'</p>
<p>"'I guess if I hadn't helped your bobservation dis
mornin', yer wouldn't have seen yer way so smart,' said
Andy.</p>
<p>"'You's a promisin' chile, Andy, der a'n't no manner
o' doubt,' said Sam. 'I think lots of yer, Andy; and I
don't feel no ways ashamed to take idees from yer.
Let's go up to the house now, Andy. I'll be boun'
Missis'll give us an uncommon good bite dis yere
time.'"</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_234" id="Page_234"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>"The mistress had promised that dinner should be
brought on the table in a hurry, and she had given the
orders in Haley's hearing. But the servants all seemed
to have an impression that Missis would not be disobliged
by delay. Aunt Chloe, the cook, went on with
her operations in a very leisurely manner. Then it was
wonderful what a number of accidents happened. One
upset the butter; another tumbled down with the water,
and had to go to the spring for more; another spilled the
gravy; then Aunt Chloe set about making new gravy,
watching it and stirring it with the greatest precision.
If reminded that the orders were to hurry, she answered
shortly that she 'warn't a going to have raw gravy on
the table, to help nobody's catchin's.'</p>
<p>"From time to time there was giggling in the kitchen,
when news was brought that 'Mas'r Haley was mighty
oneasy, and that he couldn't set in his cheer no ways, but
was a walkin' and stalkin' to the winders and through
the porch.'</p>
<p>"'Sarves him right!' said Aunt Chloe. 'He'll git
wus nor oneasy, one of these days, if he don't mend his
ways.'</p>
<p>"At last the dinner was sent in, and the mistress
smiled and chatted, and did all she could to make the
time pass imperceptibly.</p>
<p>"At two o'clock, Sam and Andy brought the horses
up to the posts, apparently greatly refreshed and invigorated
by the scamper of the morning. As Haley prepared
to mount, he said, 'Your master don't keep no
dogs, I s'pose?'</p>
<p>"'Heaps on 'em,' said Sam, triumphantly. 'Thar's
Bruno,—he's a roarer; and besides that, 'bout every
nigger of us keeps a pup o' some natur' or uther.'</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_235" id="Page_235"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>"'But does your master keep any dogs for tracking
out niggers?' said Haley.</p>
<p>"Sam knew very well what he meant, but he kept on
a look of desperate simplicity. 'Wal,' said he, 'our
dogs all smells round considerable sharp. I 'spect they's
the <i>kind</i>, though they ha'n't never had no <i>practice</i>.
They's far dogs at most anything though, if you'd
get 'em started.' He whistled to Bruno, a great lumbering
Newfoundland dog, who came pitching tumultuously
toward them.</p>
<p>"'You go hang!' exclaimed Haley, mounting his
horse. 'Come, tumble up, now.'</p>
<p>"Sam tumbled up accordingly, contriving to tickle
Andy as he did so. This made Andy split out into a
laugh, greatly to Haley's indignation, who made a cut at
him with his riding-whip. 'I'se 'stonished at yer, Andy,'
said Sam, with awful gravity. 'This yere's a seris
bisness, Andy. Yer mustn't be a makin' game. This
yere a'n't no way to help Mas'r.'</p>
<p>"When they came to the boundaries of the estate,
Haley said: 'I shall take the road to the river. I know
the way of all of 'em. They always makes tracks for
the underground.'</p>
<p>"'Sartin, dat's de idee,' said Sam. 'Mas'r Haley hits
de thing right in de middle. Now, der's two roads to
de river,—de dirt road and der pike. Which Mas'r
mean to take?'</p>
<p>"Andy looked up innocently at Sam, surprised at hearing
this new geographical fact; but he instantly confirmed
what Sam said.</p>
<p>"'I'd rather be 'clined to 'magine that Lizy'd take
der dirt road, bein' it's the least travelled,' said Sam.
Though Haley was an old bird, and inclined to be suspicious<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_236" id="Page_236"></SPAN></span>
of chaff, he was rather brought up by this view
of the case. He pondered a moment, and said, 'If yer
wasn't both on yer such cussed liars, now!'</p>
<p>"The pensive tone in which this was spoken amused
Andy prodigiously. He fell a little behind, and shook so
with laughter as to run a great risk of falling from his
horse. But Sam's face was immovably composed into
the most doleful gravity.</p>
<p>"'Course, Mas'r can do as he'd ruther,' said Sam.
'It's all one to us. When I study 'pon it, I think de
straight road is de best.'</p>
<p>"'She would naturally go a lonesome way,' said
Haley.</p>
<p>"'I should 'magine so,' said Sam; 'but gals is pecular.
Dey nebber does nothin' ye thinks they will; mose
gen'lly de contrar; so if yer thinks they've gone one
road, it's sartin you'd better go t'other, and then you'll
be sure to find 'em. So I think we'd better take de
straight road.'</p>
<p>"Haley announced decidedly that he should go the
other, and asked when they should come to it.</p>
<p>"'A little piece ahed,' said Sam, giving a wink to
Andy. He added gravely, 'I've studded on de matter,
and I'm quite clar we ought not to go dat ar way. I
nebber been over it no way. It's despit lonesome, and
we might lose our way. And now I think on't, I hearn
'em tell dat ar road was all fenced up down by der creek.
A'n't it, Andy?'</p>
<p>"Andy wasn't certain; he'd only 'hearn tell' about
that road, but had never been over it.</p>
<p>"Haley thought the first mention of the road was involuntary
on Sam's part, and that, upon second thoughts,
he had lied desperately to dissuade him from taking that<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_237" id="Page_237"></SPAN></span>
direction because he was unwilling to implicate Eliza.
Therefore he struck briskly into the road, and was followed
by Sam and Andy.</p>
<p>"The road in fact had formerly been an old thoroughfare
to the river, but after the laying of the new pike it
had been abandoned. It was open for about an hour's
ride, and after that it was cut across by various farms
and fences. Sam knew this perfectly well; indeed, the
road had been so long closed that Andy had never heard
of it. He therefore rode along with an air of dutiful submission,
only groaning occasionally, and saying it was
'desp't rough, and bad for Jerry's foot.'</p>
<p>"'Now, I jest give yer warning, I know yer,' said
Haley. 'Yer won't get me to turn off this yere road,
with all yer fussin'; so you shet up.'</p>
<p>"'Mas'r will go his own way,' said Sam, with rueful
submission, at the same time winking portentously to
Andy, whose delight now was very near the explosive
point. Sam was in wonderful spirits. He professed to
keep a very brisk lookout. At one time he exclaimed
that he saw 'a gal's bunnet' on the top of some distant
eminence; at another time, he called out to Andy to ask
if 'that thar wasn't Lizy down in the holler.' He was
always sure to make these exclamations in some rough
or craggy part of the road, where the sudden quickening
of speed was a special inconvenience to all parties concerned,
thus keeping Haley in a state of constant commotion.</p>
<p>"After riding about an hour in this way, the whole
party made a precipitate and tumultuous descent into a
barn-yard belonging to a large farming establishment.
Not a soul was in sight, all the hands being employed
in the fields; but as the barn stood square across the road,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_238" id="Page_238"></SPAN></span>
it was evident that their journey in that direction had
reached its end.</p>
<p>"'You rascal!' said Haley; 'you knew all about this.'</p>
<p>"'Didn't I <i>tell</i> yer I knowed, and yer wouldn't believe
me?' replied Sam. 'I telled Mas'r 't was all shet up, and
fenced up, and I didn't 'spect we could git through. Andy
heard me.'</p>
<p>"This was too true to be disputed, and the unlucky
man had to pocket his wrath as well as he could. All
three faced to the right about, and took up their line of
march for the highway."</p>
<p>[The consequence of all these delays was, that they
reached the Ohio River only in season to see Eliza and
her child get safely on the other side, by jumping from
one mass of floating ice to the other.]</p>
<p>"'The gal's got seven devils in her I believe,' said
Haley. 'How like a wild-cat she jumped!'</p>
<p>"'Wal, now,' said Sam, scratching his head, 'I hope
Mas'r 'scuse us tryin' dat ar road. Don't think I feel
spry enough for dat ar, no way'; and Sam gave a hoarse
chuckle.</p>
<p>"'<i>You</i> laugh!' exclaimed the slave-trader, with a
growl.</p>
<p>"'I couldn't help it now, Mas'r,' said Sam, giving way
to the long pent-up delight of his soul. 'She looked so
curis, a leapin' and springin'; ice a crackin'—and only
to hear her! plump! ker chunk! ker splash!' and Sam
and Andy laughed till the tears rolled down their cheeks.</p>
<p>"'I'll make yer laugh t'other side yer mouths!' exclaimed
the trader, laying about their heads with his
riding-whip. Both ducked, and ran shouting up the
bank. They were on their horses before he could come
up with them.</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_239" id="Page_239"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>"With much gravity Sam called out: 'Good evening,
Mas'r Haley. Won't want us no longer. I 'spect Missis
be anxious 'bout Jerry. Missis wouldn't hear of our
ridin' the critturs over Lizy's bridge to-night.' With a
poke into Andy's ribs, they started off at full speed, their
shouts of laughter coming faintly on the wind.</p>
<p>"Sam was in the highest possible feather. He expressed
his exultation by all sorts of howls and ejaculations,
and by divers odd motions and contortions of his
whole system. Sometimes he would sit backward with
his face to the horse's tail; then, with a whoop and a
somerset, he would come right side up in his place again;
and, drawing on a grave face, he would begin to lecture
Andy for laughing and playing the fool. Anon, slapping
his sides with his arms, he would burst forth in peals of
laughter, that made the old woods ring as they passed.
With all these evolutions, he contrived to keep the horses
up to the top of their speed, until, between ten and eleven,
their heels resounded on the gravel at the end of the
balcony.</p>
<p>"His mistress flew to the railings, and called out, 'Is
that you, Sam? Where are they?'</p>
<p>"'Mas'r Haley's a restin' at the tavern,' said Sam.
'He's drefful fatigued, Missis.'</p>
<p>"'And Eliza, where is she, Sam?'</p>
<p>"'Wal, Missis, de Lord he persarves his own. Lizy's
done gone over the river into 'Hio; as 'markably as if de
Lord took her over in a chariot of fire and two hosses.'</p>
<p>"His master, who had followed his wife to the verandah,
said, 'Come up here, and tell your mistress what she
wants to know.'</p>
<p>"Sam soon appeared at the parlor-door, hat in hand.
In answer to their questions, he told his story in lively<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_240" id="Page_240"></SPAN></span>
style. 'Dis yere's a providence, and no mistake,' said
Sam, piously rolling up his eyes. 'As Missis has allers
been instructin' on us, thar's allers instruments ris up to
do de Lord's will. Now if it hadn't been for me to-day,
Lizy'd been took a dozen times. Warn't it I started
off de hosses, dis yere mornin', and kept 'em chasin' till
dinner time? And didn't I car Mas'r Haley five miles
out of de road dis evening? else he'd a come up with
Lizy, as easy as a dog arter a coon. Dese yere's all
providences!'</p>
<p>"With as much sternness as he could command under
the circumstances, his master said, 'They are a kind of
providences that you'll have to be pretty sparing of,
Sam. I allow no such practices with gentlemen on my
place.'</p>
<p>"Sam stood with the corners of his mouth lowered, in
most penitential style. 'Mas'r's quite right,' said he.
'It was ugly on me; thar's no disputin' that ar; and
of course Mas'r and Missis wouldn't encourage no such
works. I'm sensible ob dat ar. But a poor nigger like
me's 'mazin' tempted to act ugly sometimes, when fellers
will cut up such shines as dat ar Mas'r Haley. He a'n't
no gen'l'man no way. Anybody's been raised as I've
been can't help a seein' dat ar.'</p>
<p>"'Well, Sam,' said his mistress, 'as you seem to have
a proper sense of your errors, you may go now and tell
Aunt Chloe she may get you some of that cold ham that
was left of dinner to-day. You and Andy must be
hungry.'</p>
<p>"'Missis is a heap too good for us,' said Sam, making
his bow with alacrity and departing.</p>
<p>"Having done up his piety and humility, to the satisfaction
of the parlor, as he trusted, he clapped his palm-leaf<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_241" id="Page_241"></SPAN></span>
on his head with a sort of free-and-easy air, and
proceeded to the dominions of Aunt Chloe, with the intention
of flourishing largely in the kitchen."</p>
<h2><SPAN name="JOHN_BROWN_AND_THE_COLORED_CHILD" id="JOHN_BROWN_AND_THE_COLORED_CHILD"></SPAN>JOHN BROWN AND THE COLORED CHILD.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY L. MARIA CHILD.</p>
<p class="edcomment">[When John Brown went from the jail to the gallows, in Charlestown,
Virginia, December 2, 1859, he stooped to kiss a little colored
child.]</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">A winter sunshine, still and bright,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">The Blue Hills bathed with golden light,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And earth was smiling to the sky,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">When calmly he went forth to die.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Infernal passions festered there,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Where peaceful Nature looked so fair;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And fiercely, in the morning sun,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Flashed glitt'ring bayonet and gun.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">The old man met no friendly eye,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">When last he looked on earth and sky;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">But one small child, with timid air,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Was gazing on his hoary hair.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">As that dark brow to his upturned,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">The tender heart within him yearned;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And, fondly stooping o'er her face,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">He kissed her for her injured race.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_242" id="Page_242"></SPAN></span>
<span class="i0">The little one she knew not why<br/></span>
<span class="i0">That kind old man went forth to die;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Nor why, 'mid all that pomp and stir,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">He stooped to give a kiss to <i>her</i>.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">But Jesus smiled that sight to see,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And said, "He did it unto <i>me</i>."<br/></span>
<span class="i0">The golden harps then sweetly rung,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And this the song the angels sung:<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">"Who loves the poor doth love the Lord;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Earth cannot dim thy bright reward:<br/></span>
<span class="i0">We hover o'er yon gallows high,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And wait to bear thee to the sky."<br/></span></div>
</div>
<hr class="tb" />
<p>John Brown, on his way to the scaffold, stooped to take
up a slave-child. That closing example was the legacy of the
dying man to his country. That benediction we must continue
and fulfil. In this new order, equality, long postponed,
shall become the master-principle of our system, and the very
frontispiece of our Constitution.—<span class="smcap">Hon. Charles Sumner.</span></p>
<hr class="tb" />
<p>Christ told me to remember those in bonds as bound
with them; to do toward them as I should wish them to do
toward me in similar circumstances. My conscience bade me
to do that. Therefore I have no regret for the transaction for
which I am condemned. I think I feel as happy as Paul did
when he lay in prison. He knew if they killed him it would
greatly advance the cause of Christ. That was the reason he
rejoiced. On that same ground "I do rejoice, yea, and will
rejoice."—<span class="smcap">John Brown</span>.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_243" id="Page_243"></SPAN></span></p>
<h2><SPAN name="THE_AIR_OF_FREEDOM" id="THE_AIR_OF_FREEDOM"></SPAN>THE AIR OF FREEDOM.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY FRANCES E. W. HARPER.</p>
<p class="edcomment">[Written at Niagara Falls in 1856.]</p>
<p>I have just returned from Canada. I have gazed for
the first time upon free land. Would you believe it?
the tears sprang to my eyes, and I wept. It was a glorious
sight to gaze, for the first time, on the land where a
poor slave, flying from our land of boasted liberty, would
in a moment find his fetters broken and his shackles
loosed. Whatever he was in the land of Washington,
in the shadow of Bunker Hill Monument, or even
upon Plymouth Rock, <i>here</i> he becomes "a man and a
brother."</p>
<p>I had gazed on Harper's Ferry, or rather the Rock at
the Ferry, towering up in simple grandeur, with the
gentle Potomac gliding peacefully at its feet; and I felt
that it was God's masonry. My soul expanded while
gazing on its sublimity. I had heard the ocean singing
its wild chorus of sounding waves, and the living chords
of my heart thrilled with ecstasy. I have since seen the
rainbow-crowned Niagara, girdled with grandeur and
robed with glory, chanting the choral hymn of omnipotence;
but none of these sights have melted me, as did
the first sight of free land.</p>
<p>Towering mountains, lifting their hoary summits to
catch the first faint flush of day, when the sunbeams kiss
the shadows from morning's drowsy face, may expand
and exalt your soul; the first view of the ocean may<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_244" id="Page_244"></SPAN></span>
fill you with strange delight; the great, the glorious
Niagara may hush your spirit with its ceaseless thunder,—it
may charm you with its robe of crested spray, and
with its rainbow crown: but the land of freedom has
a lesson of deeper significance than foaming waves and
towering mountains. It carries the heart back to that
heroic struggle in Great Britain for the emancipation of
the slaves, in which the great heart of the people throbbed
for liberty, and the mighty pulse of the nation beat
for freedom, till eight hundred thousand men, women,
and children in the West Indies arose redeemed from
bondage and freed from chains.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="EMANCIPATION_IN_THE_DISTRICT_OF" id="EMANCIPATION_IN_THE_DISTRICT_OF"></SPAN>EMANCIPATION IN THE DISTRICT OF COLUMBIA, APRIL 16, 1862.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY JAMES MADISON BELL.</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Unfurl your banners to the breeze!<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Let Freedom's tocsin sound amain,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Until the islands of the seas<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Re-echo with the glad refrain!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Columbia's free! Columbia's free!<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Her teeming streets, her vine-clad groves,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Are sacred now to Liberty,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And God, who every right approves.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Thank God, the Capital is free!<br/></span>
<span class="i2">The slaver's pen, the auction-block,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">The gory lash of cruelty,<br/></span>
<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_245" id="Page_245"></SPAN></span>
<span class="i2">No more this nation's pride shall mock;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">No more, within those ten miles square,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Shall men be bought and women sold;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Nor infants, sable-hued and fair,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Exchanged again for paltry gold.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">To-day the Capital is free!<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And free those halls where Adams stood<br/></span>
<span class="i0">To plead for man's humanity,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And for a common brotherhood;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Where Sumner stood, with massive frame,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Whose eloquent philosophy<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Has clustered round his deathless name<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Bright laurels for eternity;<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Where Wilson, Lovejoy, Wade, and Hale,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And other lights of equal power,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Have stood, like warriors clad in mail,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Before the giant of the hour,—<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Co-workers in a common cause,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Laboring for their country's weal,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">By just enactments, righteous laws,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And burning, eloquent appeal.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">To them we owe and gladly bring<br/></span>
<span class="i2">The grateful tributes of our hearts;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And while we live to muse and sing,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">These in our songs shall claim their parts.<br/></span>
<span class="i0">To-day Columbia's air doth seem<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Much purer than in days agone;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And now her mighty heart, I deem,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Hath lighter grown by marching on.<br/></span></div>
<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_246" id="Page_246"></SPAN></span></div>
<h2><SPAN name="THE_LAWS_OF_HEALTH" id="THE_LAWS_OF_HEALTH"></SPAN>THE LAWS OF HEALTH.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY L. MARIA CHILD.</p>
<p>There are three things peculiarly essential to health,—plenty of fresh
water, plenty of pure air, and enough of nourishing food.</p>
<p>If possible, the human body should be washed all over every day; but if
circumstances render that difficult, the operation should be performed
at least two or three times a week. People in general are not aware how
important frequent bathing is. The cuticle, or skin, with which the
human body is covered, is like fine net-work, or lace. By help of a
magnifying-glass, called a microscope, it can be seen that there are a
thousand holes in every inch of our skin. In the skin of a middle-sized
man there are two millions three hundred and four thousand of these
holes, called pores. Those pores are the mouths of exceedingly small
vessels made to carry off fluids, which are continually formed in the
human body, and need to be continually carried off. This process is
going on all the time, whether we are sleeping or waking, hot or cold.
When we are cool and at rest, that which passes off is invisible; and
because we see no signs of it, and are not sensible of it, it is called
insensible perspiration. But in very hot weather, or when we exercise
violently, a saltish fluid passes through our pores in great drops,
which we call sweat; and because we can see and feel it, it is called
sensible perspiration. If the pores of the body are filled up with dust,
or<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_247" id="Page_247"></SPAN></span> any kind of dirt, the fluids cannot pass off through them, as Nature
intended; and, being shut up, they become corrupt and produce fevers and
bad humors. This is the reason why physicians always advise people to be
careful and keep their pores open. In order to do this, dust and dirt
should be frequently washed away. Many a fever and many a troublesome
sore might be prevented by frequent bathing. Moreover, the skin looks
smoother and handsomer when it is washed often. If a pond or river is
near by, it is well to swim a few minutes every day or two; if not, the
body should be washed with a pail of water and a rag. But it is not safe
to go into cold water, or to apply it to the skin, when you are very
much heated; nor is it safe to drink much cold water until you get
somewhat cool. The best way is to plunge into water when you first get
up in the morning, and then rub yourself with a cloth till you feel all
of a glow. It takes but a few minutes, and you will feel more vigorous
for it all day. Cool water is more healthy to wash in than warm water.
It makes a person feel stronger, and it is not attended with any danger
of catching cold afterward. But water directly from the well is too
chilly; it is better to use it when it has been standing in the house
some hours. Garments worn next to the skin, and the sheets in which you
sleep, imbibe something of the fluids all the time passing from the
body; therefore they should be washed every week. I am aware that, as
slaves, you had no beds or sheets; but as free men I hope you will
gradually be able to provide yourselves with such comforts. Meanwhile,
sleep in the cleanest way that you can; for that is one way to avoid
sickness. When the skin is hot and feverish, it does a great deal of
good to wipe the face, arms, and legs with a cloth moistened with<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_248" id="Page_248"></SPAN></span> cool
water, changed occasionally. Headache is often cured by placing the feet
in cool water a minute or two, and then rubbing them smartly with a dry
cloth. Sitting in cool water fifteen or twenty minutes is also a remedy
for headache or dizziness. A cut or bruise heals much quicker if it is
soaked ten or fifteen minutes in cool water, then wrapped in six or
eight folds of wet rag, and covered with a piece of dry cloth. The rag
should be moistened again when it gets dry. This simple process subdues
the heat and fever of a wound. When the throat is sore, it is an
excellent thing to wash the outside freely with cold water the first
thing in the morning, and then wipe it very dry. A wet bandage at night,
covered with a dry cloth, to keep it from the air, often proves very
comforting when the throat is inflamed. Indeed, it is scarcely possible
to say too much in favor of using cool water freely, at suitable times.</p>
<p>Fresh air is as important as good water. The lungs of the human body are
all the time drawing in air and breathing out air. What we breathe out
carries away with it something from our bodies. Therefore it is
unhealthy to be in a room with many people, without doors or windows
open; for the people draw in all the fresh air, and what they breathe
out is more or less corrupted by having passed through their bodies. It
is very important to health to have plenty of pure fresh air to breathe.
No dirty things, or decaying substances, such as cabbage leaves or
mouldy vegetables, or pools of stagnant water, should be allowed to
remain anywhere near a dwelling. The pools should be filled up, and the
decaying things should be carried away from the house, heaped up and
covered with earth to make manure for the garden. If there is not room
enough to do that, they should<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_249" id="Page_249"></SPAN></span> be buried in the ground. Whole families
often have fevers from breathing the bad odors that rise from such
things. It is morally wrong to indulge in any habits that injure the
health or well-being of others. The bed, and the coverings of the bed,
should have fresh air let in upon them every day; otherwise, they retain
the fluids which are passing from the body all the time. In England,
children that worked in large manufactories became pale and sickly and
died off fast. When doctors inquired into it, they found that the poor
little creatures crept into the same bedclothes week after week, and
month after month, without having them washed or aired.</p>
<p>Occasional change in articles of food is healthy, as well as agreeable;
but it is injurious to eat a great variety of things at the same meal.
There are two good rules, so very simple that everybody, rich or poor,
can observe them: First, never indulge yourself in eating what you have
found by experience does not agree with you; secondly, when you have
eaten enough, do not continue to eat merely because the food tastes
good. It is foolish to derange the stomach for a long time to please the
palate for a short time.</p>
<p>If you have oppressed feelings in the head, or sour and bitter tastes in
the mouth, or a tendency to sickishness, take nothing but bread and
water for two or three days, and you will be very likely to save
yourself from a fever.</p>
<p>People might spare themselves many a toothache if they would rinse their
mouths after every meal, and every night, before going to bed, remove
every particle of food from between the teeth, and rinse them thoroughly
with water. New toothpicks should be made often, for the sake of
cleanliness.</p>
<p>Dirt was a necessity of Slavery; and that is one<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_250" id="Page_250"></SPAN></span> reason, among many
others, why freemen should hate it, and try to put it away from their
minds, their persons, and their habitations.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="PRESIDENT_LINCOLNS_PROCLAMATION_OF" id="PRESIDENT_LINCOLNS_PROCLAMATION_OF"></SPAN>PRESIDENT LINCOLN'S PROCLAMATION OF EMANCIPATION, JANUARY 1, 1863.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY FRANCES E. W. HARPER.</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">It shall flash through coming ages,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">It shall light the distant years;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And eyes now dim with sorrow<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Shall be brighter through their tears.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">It shall flush the mountain ranges,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And the valleys shall grow bright;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">It shall bathe the hills in radiance,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And crown their brows with light.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">It shall flood with golden splendor<br/></span>
<span class="i2">All the huts of Caroline;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And the sun-kissed brow of labor<br/></span>
<span class="i2">With lustre new shall shine.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">It shall gild the gloomy prison,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Darkened by the nation's crime,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Where the dumb and patient millions<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Wait the better-coming time.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">By the light that gilds their prison<br/></span>
<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_251" id="Page_251"></SPAN></span><span class="i2">They shall see its mouldering key;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And the bolts and bars shall vibrate<br/></span>
<span class="i2">With the triumphs of the free.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Though the morning seemed to linger<br/></span>
<span class="i2">O'er the hill-tops far away,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Now the shadows bear the promise<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Of the quickly coming day.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Soon the mists and murky shadows<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Shall be fringed with crimson light,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And the glorious dawn of freedom<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Break refulgent on the sight.<br/></span></div>
</div>
<h2><SPAN name="NEW-YEARS_DAY_ON_THE_ISLANDS_OF" id="NEW-YEARS_DAY_ON_THE_ISLANDS_OF"></SPAN>NEW-YEAR'S DAY ON THE ISLANDS OF SOUTH CAROLINA, 1863.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY CHARLOTTE L. FORTEN.</p>
<p>A few days before Christmas we were delighted at
receiving a beautiful Christmas Hymn from John
G. Whittier, written especially for our children. They
learned it very easily, and enjoyed singing it. We showed
them the writer's picture, and told them he was a very
good friend of theirs, who felt the deepest interest in
them, and had written this Hymn expressly for them to
sing. This made them very proud and happy.</p>
<p>Early Christmas morning we were wakened by the
people knocking at the doors and windows, and shouting
"Merry Christmas!" After distributing some little presents
among them, we went to the church, which had been
decorated with holly, pine, cassena, mistletoe, and the<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_252" id="Page_252"></SPAN></span>
hanging moss, and had a very Christmas-like look. The
children of our school assembled there, and we gave them
the nice comfortable clothing and the picture-books which
had been kindly sent by some Philadelphia ladies. There
were at least a hundred and fifty children present. It
was very pleasant to see their happy, expectant little
faces. To them it was a wonderful Christmas-day, such
as they had never dreamed of before. There was cheerful
sunshine without, lighting up the beautiful moss drapery
of the oaks, and looking in joyously through the
open windows; and there were bright faces and glad
hearts within.</p>
<p>After the distribution of the gifts, the children were
addressed by some of the gentlemen present. Then they
sang the following Hymn, which their good friend Whittier
had written for them:—</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">"O, none in all the world before<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Were ever so glad as we!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">We're free on Carolina's shore,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">We're all at home and free.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">"Thou Friend and Helper of the poor,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Who suffered for our sake,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">To open every prison-door,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And every yoke to break,—<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">"Bend low thy pitying face and mild,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And help us sing and pray;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">The hand that blest the little child<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Upon our foreheads lay.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">"We hear no more the driver's horn,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">No more the whip we fear;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">This holy day that saw thee born<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Was never half so dear.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">"The very oaks are greener clad,<br/></span>
<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_253" id="Page_253"></SPAN></span>
<span class="i2">The waters brighter smile;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">O, never shone a day so glad<br/></span>
<span class="i2">On sweet St. Helen's Isle.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">"We praise Thee in our songs to-day,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">To Thee in prayer we call;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Make swift the feet and straight the way<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Of freedom unto all.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">"Come once again, O blessed Lord!<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Come walking on the sea!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And let the mainlands hear the word<br/></span>
<span class="i2">That sets the islands free!"<br/></span></div>
</div>
<p>Then they sang John Brown's Hallelujah Song, and several
of their own hymns.</p>
<p>Christmas night, the children came in and had several
grand shouts. They were too happy to keep still. One
of them, a cunning, kittenish little creature, named Amaretta,
only six years old, has a remarkably sweet voice.
"O Miss," said she, "all I want to do is to sing and
shout!" And sing and shout she did, to her heart's content.
She reads nicely, and is very fond of books. Many
of the children already know their letters. The parents
are eager to have them learn. They sometimes say to
me: "Do, Miss, let de children learn eberyting dey can.
We neber hab no chance to learn nuttin'; but we wants
de chillen to learn." They are willing to make many
sacrifices that their children may attend school. One old
woman, who had a large family of children and grandchildren,
came regularly to school in the winter, and took
her seat among the little ones. Another woman, who
had one of the best faces I ever saw, came daily, and
brought her baby in her arms. It happened to be one
of the best babies in the world, and allowed its mother to
pursue her studies without interruption.</p>
<p>New-Year's Day, Emancipation Day, was a glorious<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_254" id="Page_254"></SPAN></span>
one to us. General Saxton and Colonel Higginson had
invited us to visit the camp of the First Regiment of
South Carolina Volunteers on that day, "the greatest
day in the nation's history." We enjoyed perfectly the
exciting scene on board the steamboat Flora. There was
an eager, wondering crowd of the freed people, in their
holiday attire, with the gayest of headkerchiefs, the
whitest of aprons, and the happiest of faces. The
band was playing, the flags were streaming, and everybody
was talking merrily and feeling happy. The sun
shone brightly, and the very waves seemed to partake of
the universal gayety, for they danced and sparkled more
joyously than ever before. Long before we reached
Camp Saxton, we could see the beautiful grove and the
ruins of the old fort near it. Some companies of the
First Regiment were drawn up in line under the trees
near the landing, ready to receive us. They were a fine,
soldierly looking set of men, and their brilliant dress made
a splendid appearance among the trees. It was my good
fortune to find an old friend among the officers. He took
us over the camp and showed us all the arrangements.
Everything looked clean and comfortable; much neater,
we were told, than in most of the white camps. An officer
told us that he had never seen a regiment in which
the men were so honest. "In many other camps," said
he, "the Colonel and the rest of us would find it necessary
to place a guard before our tents. We never do it
here. Our tents are left entirely unguarded, but nothing
has ever been touched." We were glad to know that.
It is a remarkable fact, when we consider that the men
of this regiment have all their lives been slaves; for we
all know that Slavery does not tend to make men honest.</p>
<p>The ceremony in honor of Emancipation took place in<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_255" id="Page_255"></SPAN></span>
the beautiful grove of live-oaks adjoining the camp. I
wish it were possible to describe fitly the scene which
met our eyes, as we sat upon the stand, and looked down
on the crowd before us. There were the black soldiers
in their blue coats and scarlet pantaloons; the officers of
the First Regiment, and of other regiments, in their handsome
uniforms; and there were crowds of lookers-on, men,
women, and children, of every complexion, grouped in
various attitudes, under the moss-hung trees. The faces
of all wore a happy, interested look. The exercises commenced
with a prayer by the chaplain of the regiment.
An ode, written for the occasion, was then read and sung.
President Lincoln's Proclamation of Emancipation was
then read, and enthusiastically cheered. The Rev. Mr.
French presented Colonel Higginson with two very elegant
flags, a gift to the First Regiment, from the Church
of the Puritans, in New York. He accompanied them
by an appropriate and enthusiastic speech. As Colonel
Higginson took the flags, before he had time to reply to
the speech, some of the colored people, of their own accord,
began to sing,—</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">"My country, 'tis of thee,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Sweet land of liberty,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Of thee we sing!"<br/></span></div>
</div>
<p>It was a touching and beautiful incident, and sent a thrill
through all our hearts. The Colonel was deeply moved
by it. He said that reply was far more effective than
any speech he could make. But he did make one of
those stirring speeches which are "half battles." All
hearts swelled with emotion as we listened to his glorious
words, "stirring the soul like the sound of a trumpet."
His soldiers are warmly attached to him, and he evidently
feels toward them all as if they were his children.</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_256" id="Page_256"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>General Saxton spoke also, and was received with
great enthusiasm. Throughout the morning, repeated
cheers were given for him by the regiment, and joined
in heartily by all the people. They know him to be one
of the best and noblest men in the world. His unfailing
kindness and consideration for them, so different from the
treatment they have sometimes received at the hands
of United States officers, have caused them to have unbounded
confidence in him.</p>
<p>At the close of Colonel Higginson's speech, he presented
the flags to the color-bearers, Sergeant Rivers and
Sergeant Sutton, with an earnest charge, to which they
made appropriate replies.</p>
<p>Mrs. Gage uttered some earnest words, and then the
regiment sang John Brown's Hallelujah Song.</p>
<p>After the meeting was over, we saw the dress-parade,
which was a brilliant and beautiful sight. An officer told
us that the men went through the drill remarkably well,
and learned the movements with wonderful ease and rapidity.
To us it seemed strange as a miracle to see this
regiment of blacks, the first mustered into the service of
the United States, thus doing itself honor in the sight
of officers of other regiments, many of whom doubtless
came to scoff. The men afterward had a great feast; ten
oxen having been roasted whole, for their especial benefit.</p>
<p>In the evening there was the softest, loveliest moonlight.
We were very unwilling to go home; for, besides
the attractive society, we knew that the soldiers were to
have grand shouts and a general jubilee that night. But
the steamboat was coming, and we were obliged to bid a
reluctant farewell to Camp Saxton and the hospitable
dwellers therein. We walked the deck of the steamer
singing patriotic songs, and we agreed that moonlight and<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_257" id="Page_257"></SPAN></span>
water had never looked so beautiful as they did that
night. At Beaufort we took the row-boat for St. Helena.
The boatmen as they rowed sang some of their sweetest,
wildest hymns. It was a fitting close to such a day.
Our hearts were filled with an exceeding great gladness;
for although the government had left much undone, we
knew that Freedom was surely born in our land that day.
It seemed too glorious a good to realize, this beginning
of the great work we had so longed for and prayed for.
It was a sight never to be forgotten, that crowd of happy
black faces from which the shadow of Slavery had forever
passed. "Forever free! forever free!"—those
magical words in the President's Proclamation were constantly
singing themselves in my soul.</p>
<h2><SPAN name="SONG_OF_THE_NEGRO_BOATMEN_AT_PORT" id="SONG_OF_THE_NEGRO_BOATMEN_AT_PORT"></SPAN>SONG OF THE NEGRO BOATMEN AT PORT ROYAL, S. C.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY JOHN G. WHITTIER.</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">O praise and tanks! De Lord he come<br/></span>
<span class="i2">To set de people free;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">An' massa tink it day ob doom,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">An' we ob jubilee.<br/></span>
<span class="i0">De Lord dat heap de Red Sea waves,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">He jus' as 'trong as den;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">He say de word: we las' night slaves;<br/></span>
<span class="i2">To-day, de Lord's free men.<br/></span>
<span class="i4">De yam will grow, de cotton blow,<br/></span>
<span class="i6">We'll hab de rice an' corn:<br/></span>
<span class="i4">O nebber you fear, if nebber you hear<br/></span>
<span class="i6">De driver blow his horn!<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_258" id="Page_258"></SPAN></span><br/>
<span class="i0">Ole massa on he trabbels gone;<br/></span>
<span class="i2">He leaf de land behind:<br/></span>
<span class="i0">De Lord's breff blow him furder on,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Like corn-shuck in de wind.<br/></span>
<span class="i0">We own de hoe, we own de plough,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">We own de hands dat hold;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">We sell de pig, we sell de cow,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">But nebber chile be sold.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">We pray de Lord: he gib us signs<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Dat some day we be free;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">De Norf-wind tell it to de pines,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">De wild-duck to de sea;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">We tink it when de church-bell ring,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">We dream it in de dream;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">De rice-bird mean it when he sing,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">De eagle when he scream.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">We know de promise nebber fail,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">An' nebber lie de Word;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">So, like de 'postles in de jail,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">We waited for de Lord:<br/></span>
<span class="i0">An' now he open ebery door,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">An' trow away de key;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">He tink we lub him so before,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">We lub him better free.<br/></span>
<span class="i4">De yam will grow, de cotton blow,<br/></span>
<span class="i6">He'll gib de rice an' corn:<br/></span>
<span class="i4">O nebber you fear, if nebber you hear<br/></span>
<span class="i6">De driver blow his horn!<br/></span>
<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_259" id="Page_259"></SPAN></span></div>
</div>
<h2><SPAN name="EXTRACT_FROM_SPEECH_BY_HON_HENRY" id="EXTRACT_FROM_SPEECH_BY_HON_HENRY"></SPAN>EXTRACT FROM SPEECH BY HON. HENRY WILSON TO THE COLORED PEOPLE IN CHARLESTON, S. C., APRIL, 1865.</h2>
<p>"For twenty-nine years, in private life and in public
life, at all times and on all occasions, I have
spoken and voted against Slavery, and in favor of the
freedom of every man that breathes God's air or walks
His earth. And to-day, standing here in South Carolina,
I feel that the slave-power we have fought so long is
under my heel; and that the men and women held in
bondage so long are free forevermore.</p>
<p>"Understanding this to be your position,—that you are
forever free,—remember, O remember, the sacrifices that
have been made for your freedom, and be worthy of the
blessing that has come to you! I know you will be.
[Cheers.] Through these four years of bloody war, you
have always been loyal to the old flag of the country.
You have never betrayed the Union soldiers who were
fighting the battles of the country. You have guided
them, you have protected them, you have cheered them.
You have proved yourselves worthy the great situation
in which you were placed by the Slaveholders' Rebellion.
Four years ago you saw the flag of your country struck
down from Fort Sumter; yesterday you saw the old flag go
up again. Its stars now beam with a brighter lustre. You
know now what the old flag means,—that it means liberty
to every man and woman in the country. [Cheers.]</p>
<p>"You have been patient, you have endured, you have
trusted in God and your country; and the God of our<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_260" id="Page_260"></SPAN></span>
fathers has blessed our country, and He has blessed you.
The long, dreary, chilly night of Slavery has passed away
forevermore, and the sun of Liberty casts its broad beams
upon you to-day.</p>
<p>"But your duties commence with your liberties. Remember
that you are to be obedient, faithful, true, and
loyal to the country forevermore. [Cheers, and cries
of 'Yes!' 'Yes!' 'Yes!'] Remember that you are to
educate your children; that you are to improve their condition;
that you are to make a brighter future for <i>them</i>
than the past has been to <i>you</i>. Remember that you are
to be industrious. Freedom does not mean that you are
not to work. It means that when you do work you shall
have pay for it, to carry home to your wives and the children
of your love. Liberty means the liberty to work for
yourselves, to have the fruits of your labor, to better your
own condition, and improve the condition of your children.
I want every man and woman to understand that every
neglect of duty, every failure to be industrious, to be
economical, to support yourselves, to take care of your
families, to secure the education of your children, will be
put in the faces of your friends as a reproach. Your old
masters will point you out and say to us, 'We told you
so.' For more than thirty years we have said that you
were fit for liberty. We have maintained it amid obloquy
and reproach. For maintaining this doctrine in the halls
of Congress our names have been made a by-word. The
great lesson for you in the future is to prove that we were
right; to prove that you were worthy of liberty. We
simply ask you, in the name of your friends, in the name
of our country, to show by your good conduct, and by
efforts to improve your condition, that you were worthy
of freedom; to prove to all the world, even to your old<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_261" id="Page_261"></SPAN></span>
masters and mistresses, that it was a sin against God to
hold you in Slavery, and that you are worthy to have
your names enrolled among the freemen of the United
States of America. [Great cheering.]</p>
<p>"We want you to respect yourselves; to walk erect,
with the consciousness that you are free men. Be humane
and kind to each other, always serving each other
when you can. Be courteous and gentlemanly to everybody
on earth, black and white, but cringe to nobody.</p>
<p>"You have helped us to fight our battles; you have
stood by the old flag; you have given us your prayers;
and you have had the desire of your hearts fulfilled. The
cause of freedom has triumphed; and in our triumph we
want all to stand up and rejoice together."</p>
<h2><SPAN name="EXTRACT_FROM_A_SPEECH_BY_HON_JUDGE" id="EXTRACT_FROM_A_SPEECH_BY_HON_JUDGE"></SPAN>EXTRACT FROM A SPEECH BY HON. JUDGE KELLY TO THE COLORED PEOPLE IN CHARLESTON, S. C., APRIL, 1865.</h2>
<p>"I will not, my colored friends, talk to you of the
past. You understand that all too well. I turn to
the hopeful future; not to flatter you for the deeds you
have done during the last four years, but to remind you
that, though you no longer have earthly masters, there is
a Ruler in heaven whom you are bound to obey,—that
Great Being who strengthened and guided your eminent
friend William Lloyd Garrison, who trained Abraham
Lincoln for his great work, in honest poverty and simple-mindedness;
that good God whose stars shine the same
over the slaves' huts and the masters' palaces. His laws<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_262" id="Page_262"></SPAN></span>
you must obey. You must worship Him not only at the
altar, but in every act of your daily life. It will not be
enough to observe the Sabbath, to go to Him with your
sorrows, and remember Him in your joys. You must remember
that He has said to man, 'In the sweat of thy
brow shalt thou eat thy bread.' Labor is the law of all.
Your friends in the North appeal to you to help them
in the great work they undertook to do for you. We
want you to work <i>with</i> us. We want you to do it by
working here in South Carolina, earning wages, taking
care of your money, and making profit out of that money.
Work on the plantation, if that is all you can do. If you
can work in the workshop, do it, and work well. He who
does a day's work not so well as he might have done it,
cheats himself. Strive that your work on Monday shall
be better done than it was on Saturday; and when Saturday
comes round again, you will be able to do a still more
skilful day's work. We at the North sometimes learn
three or four trades. If any one of you feels sure that
he can do better for himself and his family by changing
his pursuit, he had better change it."</p>
<p>"I like to look at the women assembled here. Remember,
my friends, that you are to be mothers and
wives in the homes of free men. You must try to make
those homes respectable and happy. You are to be the
mothers of American citizens. You must give them the
best education you can. You must strive to make them
intelligent, educated, moral, patriotic, and religious men.
Many of you cannot read, but you are not too old yet to
learn. A mother who knows how to read can half educate
her own child by helping him with his lessons; and
the mother who has but little learning will get a great
deal more by trying to hear the child's lessons; and so it
is with the father.</p>
<p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_263" id="Page_263"></SPAN></span></p>
<p>"You need no longer live in slave huts, now that you
are to have your own earnings. I charge you, men, to
make your homes comfortable, and you, women, to make
them happy. Work industriously. Be faithful to each
other; be true and honest with all men. If you respect
yourselves, others will respect you. There are Northerners
who are prejudiced against you; but you can find the
way to their hearts and consciences through their pockets.
When they find that there are colored tradesmen
who have money to spend, and colored farmers who want
to buy goods of them, they will no longer call you Jack
and Joe; they will begin to think that you are Mr. John
Black and Mr. Joseph Brown." [Great laughter.]</p>
<h2><SPAN name="BLACK_TOM" id="BLACK_TOM"></SPAN>BLACK TOM.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY A YANKEE SOLDIER.</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Hunted by his Rebel master<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Over many a hill and glade,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Black Tom, with his wife and children,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Found his way to our brigade.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Tom had sense and truth and courage,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Often tried where danger rose:<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Once our flag his strong arm rescued<br/></span>
<span class="i2">From the grasp of Rebel foes.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">One day, Tom was marching with us<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Through the forest as our guide,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">When a ball from traitor's rifle<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Broke his arm and pierced his side.<br/></span>
<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_264" id="Page_264"></SPAN></span><br/></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">On a litter white men bore him<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Through the forest drear and damp,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Laid him, dying, where our banners<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Brightly fluttered o'er our camp.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Pointing to his wife and children,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">While he suffered racking pain,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Said he to our soldiers round him,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">"Don't let <i>them</i> be slaves again!"<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">"No, by Heaven!" spoke out a soldier,—<br/></span>
<span class="i2">And <i>that</i> oath was not profane,—<br/></span>
<span class="i0">"Our brigade will still protect them;<br/></span>
<span class="i2">They shall ne'er be slaves again."<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Over old Tom's dusky features<br/></span>
<span class="i2">Came and stayed a joyous ray;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And with saddened friends around him,<br/></span>
<span class="i2">His free spirit passed away.<br/></span></div>
</div>
<hr class="tb" />
<p>At Rodman's Point, in North Carolina, the United States
troops were obliged to retreat before Rebels, who outnumbered
them ten to one. The scow in which they attempted to escape
stuck in the mud, and could not be moved with poles.
While the soldiers were lying down they were in some measure
protected from Rebel bullets; but whoever jumped into
the water to push the boat off would certainly be killed. A
vigorous black man who was with them said: "Lie still. I
will push off the boat. If they kill me, it is nothing; but you
are soldiers, and are needed to fight for the country." He
leaped overboard, pushed off the boat, and sprang back,
pierced by seven bullets. He died two days after.</p>
<p>I wish I knew his name; for it deserves to be recorded with
the noblest heroes the world has known.</p>
<hr class="chap" /><p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_265" id="Page_265"></SPAN></span></p>
<h2><SPAN name="LETTER_FROM_A_FREEDMAN_TO_HIS_OLD" id="LETTER_FROM_A_FREEDMAN_TO_HIS_OLD"></SPAN>LETTER FROM A FREEDMAN TO HIS OLD MASTER.</h2>
<p class="edcomment">[Written just as he dictated it.]</p>
<p class="quotdate">
<span class="smcap">Dayton, Ohio</span>, August 7, 1865.<br/>
<br/></p>
<p><i>To my old Master</i>, <span class="smcap">Colonel P. H. Anderson</span>, <i>Big
Spring, Tennessee</i>.<br/></p>
<p>Sir: I got your letter, and was glad to find that
you had not forgotten Jourdon, and that you
wanted me to come back and live with you again, promising
to do better for me than anybody else can. I have
often felt uneasy about you. I thought the Yankees
would have hung you long before this, for harboring Rebs
they found at your house. I suppose they never heard
about your going to Colonel Martin's to kill the Union
soldier that was left by his company in their stable. Although
you shot at me twice before I left you, I did not
want to hear of your being hurt, and am glad you are
still living. It would do me good to go back to the dear
old home again, and see Miss Mary and Miss Martha and
Allen, Esther, Green, and Lee. Give my love to them
all, and tell them I hope we will meet in the better world,
if not in this. I would have gone back to see you all
when I was working in the Nashville Hospital, but one
of the neighbors told me that Henry intended to shoot
me if he ever got a chance.</p>
<p>I want to know particularly what the good chance
is you propose to give me. I am doing tolerably well
here. I get twenty-five dollars a month, with victuals
and clothing; have a comfortable home for Mandy,—the<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_266" id="Page_266"></SPAN></span>
folks call her Mrs. Anderson,—and the children—Milly,
Jane, and Grundy—go to school and are learning
well. The teacher says Grundy has a head for a
preacher. They go to Sunday school, and Mandy and
me attend church regularly. We are kindly treated.
Sometimes we overhear others saying, "Them colored
people were slaves" down in Tennessee. The children
feel hurt when they hear such remarks; but I tell them
it was no disgrace in Tennessee to belong to Colonel Anderson.
Many darkeys would have been proud, as I
used to be, to call you master. Now if you will write
and say what wages you will give me, I will be better
able to decide whether it would be to my advantage to
move back again.</p>
<p>As to my freedom, which you say I can have, there is
nothing to be gained on that score, as I got my free papers
in 1864 from the Provost-Marshal-General of the Department
of Nashville. Mandy says she would be afraid
to go back without some proof that you were disposed
to treat us justly and kindly; and we have concluded to
test your sincerity by asking you to send us our wages
for the time we served you. This will make us forget
and forgive old scores, and rely on your justice and friendship
in the future. I served you faithfully for thirty-two
years, and Mandy twenty years. At twenty-five dollars
a month for me, and two dollars a week for Mandy, our
earnings would amount to eleven thousand six hundred
and eighty dollars. Add to this the interest for the time
our wages have been kept back, and deduct what you
paid for our clothing, and three doctor's visits to me, and
pulling a tooth for Mandy, and the balance will show
what we are in justice entitled to. Please send the
money by Adams's Express, in care of V. Winters, Esq.,<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_267" id="Page_267"></SPAN></span>
Dayton, Ohio. If you fail to pay us for faithful labors
in the past, we can have little faith in your promises in
the future. We trust the good Maker has opened your
eyes to the wrongs which you and your fathers have done
to me and my fathers, in making us toil for you for generations
without recompense. Here I draw my wages
every Saturday night; but in Tennessee there was never
any pay-day for the negroes any more than for the horses
and cows. Surely there will be a day of reckoning for
those who defraud the laborer of his hire.</p>
<p>In answering this letter, please state if there would
be any safety for my Milly and Jane, who are now grown
up, and both good-looking girls. You know how it was
with poor Matilda and Catherine. I would rather stay
here and starve—and die, if it come to that—than
have my girls brought to shame by the violence and
wickedness of their young masters. You will also please
state if there has been any schools opened for the colored
children in your neighborhood. The great desire of my
life now is to give my children an education, and have
them form virtuous habits.</p>
<p>Say howdy to George Carter, and thank him for taking
the pistol from you when you were shooting at me.</p>
<p class="quotsig">
From your old servant,<br/>
<span class="smcap">Jourdon Anderson</span>.<br/></p>
<hr class="tb" />
<p><span class="smcap">Sergeant W. H. Carney</span>, of New Bedford, Massachusetts,
was very severely wounded when the famous Fifty-Fourth
Regiment attacked Fort Wagner; but he resolutely
held up the Stars and Stripes, as he dragged his wounded
limb along, amid a shower of bullets; and when he reached
his comrades he exclaimed exultingly, "The dear old flag has
never touched the ground, boys!"</p>
<hr class="chap" /><p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_268" id="Page_268"></SPAN></span></p>
<h2><SPAN name="COLONEL_ROBERT_G_SHAW" id="COLONEL_ROBERT_G_SHAW"></SPAN>COLONEL ROBERT G. SHAW.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY ELIZA B. SEDGWICK.</p>
<p class="edcomment">[In the summer of 1863 an attack was made on Fort Wagner, in
South Carolina, by the 54th Massachusetts Regiment, composed of
colored troops. Their leader, <span class="smcap">Colonel Shaw</span>, belonging to one of
the best white families in Boston, was killed. When his friends asked
for his body, the reply of the Rebels was, "He is buried with his
niggers."]</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Buried with a band of brothers,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Whom for him would fain have died;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Buried with the gallant fellows<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Who fell fighting by his side.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Buried with the men God gave him,—<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Those whom he was sent to save;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Buried with the martyred heroes,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">He has found an honored grave.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Buried where his dust so precious<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Makes the soil a hallowed spot;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Buried where by Christian patriot<br/></span>
<span class="i0">He shall never be forgot.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Buried in the ground accursed,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Which man's fettered feet have trod;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Buried where his voice still speaketh,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Appealing for the slave to God.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Fare thee well, thou noble warrior!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Who in youthful beauty went<br/></span>
<span class="i0">On a high and holy mission,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">By the God of battles sent.<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_269" id="Page_269"></SPAN></span><br/>
<span class="i0">Chosen of Him, "elect and precious,"<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Well didst thou fulfil thy part;<br/></span>
<span class="i0">When thy country "counts her jewels,"<br/></span>
<span class="i0">She shall wear thee on her heart.<br/></span></div>
</div>
<h2><SPAN name="ADVICE_FROM_AN_OLD_FRIEND" id="ADVICE_FROM_AN_OLD_FRIEND"></SPAN>ADVICE FROM AN OLD FRIEND.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY L. MARIA CHILD.</p>
<p>For many years I have felt great sympathy for you,
my brethren and sisters, and I have tried to do
what I could to help you to freedom. And now that you
have at last received the long-desired blessing, I most
earnestly wish that you should make the best possible
use of it. I have made this book to encourage you to
exertion by examples of what colored people are capable
of doing. Such men and women as Toussaint l'Ouverture,
Benjamin Banneker, Phillis Wheatley, Frederick
Douglass, and William and Ellen Crafts, prove that the
power of <i>character</i> can overcome all external disadvantages,
even that most crushing of all disadvantages, Slavery.
Perhaps few of you will be able to stir the hearts of large
assemblies by such eloquent appeals as those of Frederick
Douglass, or be able to describe what you have seen and
heard so gracefully as Charlotte L. Forten does. Probably
none of you will be called to govern a state as Toussaint
l'Ouverture did; for such a remarkable career as
his does not happen once in hundreds of years. But the
Bible says, "He that ruleth his own spirit is greater than
he that ruleth a kingdom"; and such a ruler every man
and woman can become, by the help and blessing of God.<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_270" id="Page_270"></SPAN></span>
It is not the <i>greatness</i> of the thing a man does which
makes him worthy of respect; it is the doing <i>well</i> whatsoever
he hath to do. In many respects, your opportunities
for usefulness are more limited than those of others;
but you have one great opportunity peculiar to yourselves.
You can do a vast amount of good to people in
various parts of the world, and through successive generations,
by simply being sober, industrious, and honest.
There are still many slaves in Brazil and in the Spanish
possessions. If you are vicious, lazy, and careless,
their masters will excuse themselves for continuing to
hold them in bondage, by saying: "Look at the freedmen
of the United States! What idle vagabonds they are!
How dirty their cabins are! How slovenly their dress!
That proves that negroes cannot take care of themselves,
that they are not fit to be free." But if your houses
look neat, and your clothes are clean and whole, and
your gardens well weeded, and your work faithfully done,
whether for yourselves or others, then all the world will
cry out, "You see that negroes <i>can</i> take care of themselves;
and it is a sin and a shame to keep such men in
Slavery." Thus, while you are serving your own interests,
you will be helping on the emancipation of poor
weary slaves in other parts of the world. It is a great
privilege to have a chance to do extensive good by such
simple means, and your Heavenly Father will hold you
responsible for the use you make of your influence.</p>
<p>Your manners will have a great effect in producing an
impression to your advantage or disadvantage. Be always
respectful and polite toward your associates, and
toward those who have been in the habit of considering
you an inferior race. It is one of the best ways to prove
that you are not inferior. Never allow yourselves to say<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_271" id="Page_271"></SPAN></span>
or do anything in the presence of women of your own
color which it would be improper for you to say or do
in the presence of the most refined white ladies. Such
a course will be an education for them as well as for
yourselves. When you appoint committees about your
schools and other public affairs, it would be wise to have
both men and women on the committees. The habit of
thinking and talking about serious and important matters
makes women more sensible and discreet. Such consultations
together are in fact a practical school both for you
and them; and the more modest and intelligent women
are, the better will children be brought up.</p>
<p>Personal appearance is another important thing. It is
not necessary to be rich in order to dress in a becoming
manner. A pretty dress for festival occasions will last a
long while, if well taken care of; and a few wild-flowers,
or bright berries, will ornament young girls more tastefully
than jewels. Working-clothes that are clean and
nicely patched always look respectable; and they make
a very favorable impression, because they indicate that
the wearer is neat and economical. And here let me say,
that it is a very great saving to mend garments well, and
before the rents get large. We thrifty Yankees have a
saying that "a stitch in time saves nine"; and you will
find by experience that neglected mending will require
more than nine stitches instead of one, and will not look
so well when it is done.</p>
<p>The appearance of your villages will do much to produce
a favorable opinion concerning your characters and
capabilities. Whitewash is not expensive; and it takes
but little time to transplant a cherokee rose, a jessamine,
or other wild shrubs and vines, that make the poorest
cabin look beautiful; and, once planted, they will be<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_272" id="Page_272"></SPAN></span>
growing while you are working or sleeping. It is a
public benefit to remove everything dirty or unsightly,
and to surround homes with verdure and flowers; for a
succession of pretty cottages makes the whole road pleasant,
and cheers all passers by; while they are at the same
time an advertisement, easily read by all men, that the
people who live there are not lazy, slovenly, or vulgar.
The rich pay a great deal of money for pictures to ornament
their walls, but a whitewashed cabin, with flowering-shrubs
and vines clustering round it, is a pretty
picture freely exhibited to all men. It is a public benefaction.</p>
<p>But even if you are as yet too poor to have a house
and garden of your own, it is still in your power to be a
credit and an example to your race: by working for others
as faithfully as you would work for yourself; by taking as
good care of their tools as you would if they were your
own; by always keeping your promises, however inconvenient
it may be; by being strictly honest in all your
dealings; by being temperate in your habits, and never
speaking a profane or indecent word,—by pursuing such
a course you will be consoled with an inward consciousness
of doing right in the sight of God, and be a public
benefactor by your example, while at the same time you
will secure respect and prosperity for yourself by establishing
a good character. A man whose conduct inspires
confidence is in a fair way to have house and land of his
own, even if he starts in the world without a single cent.</p>
<p>Be careful of your earnings, and as saving in your
expenses as is consistent with health and comfort; but
never allow yourselves to be stingy. Avarice is a mean
vice, which eats all the heart out of a man. Money is a
good thing, and you ought to want to earn it, as a means<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_273" id="Page_273"></SPAN></span>
of improving the condition of yourselves and families.
But it will do good to your character, and increase your
happiness, if you impart a portion of your earnings to
others who are in need. Help as much as you conveniently
can in building churches and school-houses for
the good of all, and in providing for the sick and the
aged. If your former masters and mistresses are in
trouble, show them every kindness in your power,
whether they have treated you kindly or not. Remember
the words of the blessed Jesus: "Do good to
them that hate you, and pray for them which despitefully
use you and persecute you."</p>
<p>There is one subject on which I wish to guard you
against disappointment. Do not be discouraged if freedom
brings you more cares and fewer advantages than you expected.
Such a great change as it is from Slavery to Freedom
cannot be completed all at once. By being brought
up as slaves, you have formed some bad habits, which it
will take time to correct. Those who were formerly
your masters have acquired still worse habits by being
brought up as slaveholders; and they cannot be expected
to change all at once. Both of you will gradually
improve under the teaching of new circumstances.
For a good while it will provoke many of them to see
those who were once their slaves acting like freemen.
They will doubtless do many things to vex and discourage
you, just as the slaveholders in Jamaica did after
emancipation there. They seemed to want to drive
their emancipated bondmen to insurrection, that they
might have a pretext for saying: "You see what a bad
effect freedom has on negroes! We told you it would be
so!" But the colored people of Jamaica behaved better
than their former masters wished them to do. They left<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_274" id="Page_274"></SPAN></span>
the plantations where they were badly treated, or poorly
paid, but they worked diligently elsewhere. Their women
and children raised vegetables and fowls and carried them
to market; and, by their united industry and economy,
they soon had comfortable little homes of their own.</p>
<p>I think it would generally be well for you to work for
your former masters, if they treat you well, and pay you
as much as you could earn elsewhere. But if they show
a disposition to oppress you, quit their service, and work
for somebody who will treat you like freemen. If they
use violent language to you, never use impudent language
to them. If they cheat you, scorn to cheat them
in return. If they break their promises, never break
yours. If they propose to women such connections as
used to be common under the bad system of Slavery,
teach them that freedwomen not only have the legal
power to protect themselves from such degradation, but
also that they have pride of character. If in fits of
passion, they abuse your children as they formerly did,
never revenge it by any injury to them or their property.
It is an immense advantage to any man always to keep
the right on his side. If you pursue this course you will
always be superior, however rich or elegant may be the
man or woman who wrongs you.</p>
<p>I do not mean by this that you ought to submit tamely
to insult or oppression. Stand up for your rights, but do
it in a manly way. Quit working for a man who speaks
to you contemptuously, or who tries to take a mean advantage
of you, when you are doing your duty faithfully
by him. If it becomes necessary, apply to magistrates to
protect you and redress your wrongs. If you are so unlucky
as to live where the men in authority, whether
civil or military, are still disposed to treat the colored<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_275" id="Page_275"></SPAN></span>
people as slaves, let the most intelligent among you draw
up a statement of your grievances and send it to some of
your firm friends in Congress, such as the Hon. Charles
Sumner, the Hon. Henry Wilson, and the Hon. George
W. Julian.</p>
<p>A good government seeks to make laws that will
equally protect and restrain all men. Heretofore you
had no reason to respect the laws of this country, because
they punished you for crime, in many cases more
severely than white men were punished, while they did
nothing to protect your rights. But now that good President
Lincoln has made you free, you will be legally protected
in your rights and restrained from doing wrong,
just as other men are protected and restrained. It is
one of the noblest privileges of freemen to be able to
respect the law, and to rely upon it always for redress of
grievances, instead of revenging one wrong by another
wrong.</p>
<p>You will have much to put up with before the new
order of things can become settled on a permanent foundation.
I am grieved to read in the newspapers how
wickedly you are still treated in some places; but I am
not surprised, for I knew that Slavery was a powerful
snake, that would try to do mischief with its tail after its
head was crushed. But, whatever wrongs you may endure,
comfort yourselves with two reflections: first, that
there is the beginning of a better state of things, from
which your children will derive much more benefit than
you can; secondly, that a great majority of the American
people are sincerely determined that you shall be
protected in your rights as freemen. Year by year your
condition will improve. Year by year, if you respect
yourselves, you will be more and more respected by white<span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_276" id="Page_276"></SPAN></span>
men. Wonderful changes have taken place in your favor
during the last thirty years, and the changes are still
going on. The Abolitionists did a great deal for you, by
their continual writing and preaching against Slavery.
Then this war enabled thousands of people to see for
themselves what a bad institution Slavery was; and the
uniform kindness with which you treated the Yankee soldiers
raised you up multitudes of friends. There are
still many pro-slavery people in the Northern States,
who, from aristocratic pride or low vulgarity, still call
colored people "niggers," and treat them as such. But
the good leaven is now fairly worked into public sentiment,
and these people, let them do what they will, cannot
get it out.</p>
<p>The providence of God has opened for you an upward
path. Walk ye in it, without being discouraged by the
brambles and stones at the outset. Those who come
after you will clear them away, and will place in their
stead strong, smooth rails for the steam-car called Progress
of the Colored Race.</p>
<hr class="chap" /><p><span class="pagenum"><SPAN name="Page_277" id="Page_277"></SPAN></span></p>
<h2><SPAN name="DAY_OF_JUBILEE" id="DAY_OF_JUBILEE"></SPAN>DAY OF JUBILEE.</h2>
<p class="chapauth">BY A. G. DUNCAN.</p>
<div class="poem"><div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Roll on, thou joyful day,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">When tyranny's proud sway,<br/></span>
<span class="i4">Stern as the grave,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Shall to the ground be hurled,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And Freedom's flag unfurled<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Shall wave throughout the world,<br/></span>
<span class="i4">O'er every slave!<br/></span></div>
<div class="stanza">
<span class="i0">Trump of glad jubilee,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Echo o'er land and sea,<br/></span>
<span class="i4">Freedom for all!<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Let the glad tidings fly,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">And every tribe reply,<br/></span>
<span class="i0">Glory to God on high,<br/></span>
<span class="i4">At Slavery's fall!<br/></span></div>
</div>
<div class='center'>
THE END.<br/>
<br/>
<br/></div>
<div class='center'>Cambridge: Stereotyped and Printed by Welch, Bigelow, & Co.
<br/>
<br/>
<br/>
<br/></div>
<div class="footnotes"><h3>FOOTNOTES:</h3>
<div class="footnote"><p><SPAN name="Footnote_1_1" id="Footnote_1_1"></SPAN><SPAN href="#FNanchor_1_1"><span class="label">[1]</span></SPAN> Epicureans were the followers of a philosopher in ancient Greece
who taught that pleasure was the great object in life,—an excellent
doctrine, if confined to the highest kind of pleasure, which consists in
doing good.</p>
</div>
<div class="footnote"><p><SPAN name="Footnote_2_2" id="Footnote_2_2"></SPAN><SPAN href="#FNanchor_2_2"><span class="label">[2]</span></SPAN> A daily journal of the state of the planets.</p>
</div>
<div class="footnote"><p><SPAN name="Footnote_3_3" id="Footnote_3_3"></SPAN><SPAN href="#FNanchor_3_3"><span class="label">[3]</span></SPAN> Written in 1832.</p>
</div>
<div class="footnote"><p><SPAN name="Footnote_4_4" id="Footnote_4_4"></SPAN><SPAN href="#FNanchor_4_4"><span class="label">[4]</span></SPAN> The ancient Greeks supposed that nine goddesses, whom they
named Muses, inspired people to write various kinds of poetry.</p>
</div>
<div class="footnote"><p><SPAN name="Footnote_5_5" id="Footnote_5_5"></SPAN><SPAN href="#FNanchor_5_5"><span class="label">[5]</span></SPAN> <i>Sol</i> is the word for sun in Latin, the language spoken by the
ancient Romans.</p>
</div>
<div class="footnote"><p><SPAN name="Footnote_6_6" id="Footnote_6_6"></SPAN><SPAN href="#FNanchor_6_6"><span class="label">[6]</span></SPAN> Phœbus was the name for the sun, in the language of the ancient
Greeks.</p>
</div>
<div class="footnote"><p><SPAN name="Footnote_7_7" id="Footnote_7_7"></SPAN><SPAN href="#FNanchor_7_7"><span class="label">[7]</span></SPAN> The northern part of Great Britain is called Scotland, the southern
part England. The entire people are called British.</p>
</div>
</div><hr style="width: 65%;" />
<div class='transnote'><h3>Transcriber's Notes:</h3> <p>Obvious punctuation and spelling errors
have been repaired. Spelling and accented letters, as well as inconsistent chapter headings in the
Contents and the body of the text, have otherwise been retained as they appear in the original publication.</p>
</div>
<SPAN name="endofbook"></SPAN>
<div style="break-after:column;"></div><br />